Selected quad for the lemma: truth_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
truth_n according_a doctrine_n word_n 2,065 5 3.8689 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A01979 The vvhole-armor of God: or A Christians spiritual furniture, to keepe him safe from all the assaults of Satan First preached, and now the second time published and enlarged for the good of all such as well vse it:whereunto is also added a treatise of the sinne against the Holy Ghost. By VVilliam Gouge B.D. and preacher of Gods Word in Blacke Fryers London. ...; Panoplia tou Theou Gouge, William, 1578-1653. 1619 (1619) STC 12123; ESTC S103304 450,873 662

There are 27 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

commit_v not_o on_o ignorance_n only_o etc._n but_o against_o knowledge_n voluntary_o presumptuous_o against_o god_n and_o man_n the_o history_n record_v of_o he_o apparent_o show_v 13._o and_o yet_o be_v they_o all_o pardon_v the_o reason_n hereof_o may_v not_o be_v seek_v in_o the_o party_n that_o sin_v reason_n or_o in_o the_o nature_n of_o sin_n for_o every_o sin_n be_v mortal_a and_o deserve_v eternal_a condemnation_n 23._o in_o either_o of_o those_o no_o reason_n at_o all_o can_v be_v find_v out_o but_o only_o in_o the_o extent_n of_o god_n mercy_n and_o in_o the_o all-sufficiency_n of_o christ_n sacrifice_n for_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n be_v great_a not_o only_o then_o any_o one_o but_o then_o all_o sin_n whatsoever_o and_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o sufficient_a price_n of_o redemption_n for_o all_o 7._o his_o blood_n cleanse_v from_o all_o sin_n as_o god_n mercy_n and_o christ_n sacrifice_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o pardon_v any_o one_o sin_n so_o the_o riches_n of_o god_n mercy_n and_o the_o infinite_a value_n of_o christ_n sacrifice_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o pardon_v all_o sin_n object_n why_o then_o be_v not_o the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n pardonable_a answ_n not_o because_o it_o be_v great_a than_o god_n mercy_n or_o above_o the_o price_n of_o christ_n oblation_n but_o because_o of_o god_n reveal_v determination_n against_o it_o as_o we_o shall_v 27._o hereafter_o more_o distinct_o hear_v use_v 1_o from_o this_o extent_n of_o god_n mercy_n we_o may_v well_o infer_v that_o man_n destruction_n be_v of_o himself_o 9_o either_o because_o he_o malicious_o despit_v the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n or_o wilful_o reject_v the_o offer_n of_o pardon_n in_o the_o order_n of_o redemption_n god_n have_v make_v man_n sin_n pardonable_a but_o man_n by_o his_o impenitency_n make_v it_o not_o to_o be_v pardon_v use_v 2_o from_o the_o forename_a doctrine_n we_o may_v take_v courage_n to_o fly_v to_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n for_o pardon_n how_o many_o soever_o or_o how_o great_a soever_o our_o sin_n have_v be_v note_v the_o gracious_a invitation_n of_o the_o lord_n by_o his_o prophet_n say_v come_v now_o and_o let_v we_o reason_n together_o 18._o though_o your_o sin_n be_v as_o scarlet_a they_o shall_v be_v as_o white_a as_o snow_n though_o they_o be_v red_a like_o crimson_a they_o shall_v be_v as_o wool_n whensoever_o the_o devil_n seek_v to_o bring_v we_o to_o despair_v either_o by_o the_o multitude_n or_o by_o the_o heinousness_n of_o our_o sin_n let_v we_o in_o faith_n plead_v this_o before_o god_n all_o sin_n shall_v be_v forgive_v and_o thereupon_o apply_v to_o our_o soul_n the_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o cleanse_v from_o all_o sin_n and_o be_v move_v thereby_o to_o turn_v from_o all_o §._o 7._o of_o blasphemy_n how_o heinous_a a_o sin_n it_o be_v the_o particular_a sin_n whereby_o the_o forename_a mercy_n of_o god_n in_o forgive_a sin_n be_v exemply_v be_v blasphemy_n for_o in_o saint_n matthew_n blasphemy_n be_v express_o add_v to_o all_o manner_n of_o sin_n that_o shall_v be_v forgive_v and_o in_o saint_n mark_v it_o be_v say_v that_o all_o blasphemy_n wherewith_o soever_o man_n shall_v blaspheme_v shall_v be_v forgive_v whence_o be_v offer_v two_o doctrine_n to_o our_o consideration_n 1_o blasphemy_n be_v a_o most_o heinous_a sin_n 2_o blasphemy_n may_v be_v forgive_v the_o former_a doctrine_n be_v imply_v by_o the_o particular_a mention_n of_o it_o in_o this_o place_n for_o in_o that_o christ_n give_v this_o as_o a_o instance_n and_o evidence_n of_o god_n rich_a mercy_n in_o forgive_a all_o manner_n of_o sin_n because_o he_o forgive_v blasphemy_n he_o give_v we_o thereby_o to_o understand_v that_o blasphemy_n be_v one_o of_o the_o most_o notorious_a sin_n a_o sin_n which_o be_v most_o hard_o forgive_v which_o yet_o notwithstanding_o be_v forgive_v we_o may_v well_o hope_v that_o other_o sin_n may_v be_v forgive_v the_o truth_n of_o this_o doctrine_n will_v yet_o more_o clear_o appear_v if_o we_o consider_v the_o nature_n of_o blasphemy_n blasphemy_n according_a to_o the_o notation_n of_o the_o greek_a be_v word_n signify_v 〈◊〉_d to_o hurt_v one_o fame_n or_o credit_n yea_o in_o hebrew_a also_o a_o blasphemer_n of_o god_n be_v say_v jehovae_fw-la to_o strike_v through_o the_o name_n of_o jehovah_n in_o former_a ancient_a time_n this_o world_n 16._o blasphemy_n have_v be_v use_v to_o set_v forth_o the_o dishonour_n and_o disgrace_n that_o be_v do_v to_o man_n name_n and_o credit_n in_o which_o sense_n it_o be_v also_o sometime_o use_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n as_o where_o saint_n paul_n say_v of_o himself_o and_o other_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v defame_v 〈◊〉_d or_o word_n for_o word_n to_o translate_v it_o be_v blaspheme_v we_o pray_v and_o where_o saint_n jude_n say_v of_o the_o wicked_a in_o his_o time_n they_o speak_v evil_a of_o or_o they_o blaspheme_v dignity_n yet_o now_o long_o use_v in_o god_n church_n have_v appropriate_v the_o word_n blasphemy_n to_o a_o high_a dishonour_n do_v to_o the_o great_a name_n of_o god_n and_o that_o both_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o matter_n and_o also_o of_o the_o manner_n whereby_o god_n name_n be_v dishonour_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o matter_n of_o blasphemy_n god_n be_v blaspheme_v two_o way_n either_o privative_o by_o take_v away_o from_o god_n that_o which_o be_v due_a unto_o he_o and_o wherein_o his_o honour_n consist_v or_o positive_o by_o attribute_v that_o unto_o he_o which_o be_v unbeseeming_a his_o majesty_n and_o dishonourable_a to_o his_o great_a name_n the_o honour_n due_a to_o god_n be_v take_v from_o he_o two_o way_n 1_o simple_o when_o that_o which_o proper_o belong_v unto_o he_o be_v deny_v he_o thus_o because_o the_o king_n of_o ashur_n deny_v that_o god_n be_v able_a to_o save_v jerusalem_n and_o to_o deliver_v it_o out_o of_o his_o hand_n 17._o he_o be_v say_v to_o blaspheme_v the_o lord_n god_n of_o israel_n 2_o by_o consequence_n when_o that_o which_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o creator_n be_v attribute_v to_o the_o creature_n thus_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisy_n imagine_v christ_n to_o be_v a_o mere_a creature_n 3._o and_o not_o think_v that_o he_o be_v god_n because_o he_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o forgive_v sin_n which_o be_v a_o power_n proper_a only_o unto_o god_n accuse_v he_o of_o blasphemy_n and_o again_o the_o jew_n go_v about_o to_o stone_n he_o for_o blasphemy_n because_o as_o they_o allege_v he_o be_v a_o man_n 33._o make_v himself_o god_n though_o their_o censure_n of_o christ_n be_v most_o false_a and_o slanderous_a yet_o thereby_o they_o plain_o show_v what_o be_v account_v blasphemy_n but_o to_o make_v this_o point_n more_o clear_a the_o holy_a ghost_n express_o say_v of_o the_o israelite_n in_o the_o wilderness_n that_o they_o commit_v great_a blasphemy_n 18._o because_o they_o say_v of_o the_o melt_a calf_n which_o they_o set_v up_o this_o be_v thy_o god_n which_o bring_v thou_o up_o out_o of_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n whereby_o they_o attribute_v to_o the_o calf_n a_o creature_n of_o their_o own_o make_n that_o which_o god_n the_o creator_n of_o all_o thing_n do_v the_o other_o kind_n of_o blasphemy_n in_o attribute_v such_o thing_n to_o god_n which_o be_v unbeseeming_a his_o excellency_n be_v note_v in_o those_o israelite_n that_o cause_v their_o son_n to_o pass_v through_o the_o fire_n make_v god_n thereby_o like_a unto_o the_o devil_n to_o delight_v in_o man_n blood_n a_o thing_n most_o dishonourable_a to_o the_o divine_a majesty_n the_o lord_n have_v relation_n to_o that_o heathenish_a and_o barbarous_a fact_n of_o the_o israelite_n say_v to_o their_o child_n 27._o in_o this_o have_v your_o father_n blaspheme_v i_o thus_o it_o be_v note_v of_o those_o on_o who_o the_o vial_n of_o god_n wrath_n be_v pour_v out_o 11._o that_o they_o blaspheme_v the_o god_n of_o heaven_n for_o their_o pain_n their_o blasphemy_n without_o question_n be_v that_o they_o impeach_v god_n of_o injustice_n unmercifulnes_n cruelty_n and_o such_o like_a thing_n much_o unbeseeming_a his_o glorious_a name_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o manner_n of_o blasphemy_n when_o any_o thing_n be_v speak_v of_o god_n or_o to_o god_n ignominious_o reproachful_o disgraceful_o contemptuous_o or_o the_o like_a god_n name_n be_v blaspheme_v thereby_o 2._o as_o when_o pharaoh_n say_v who_o be_v the_o lord_n that_o i_o shall_v hear_v his_o voice_n etc._n etc._n and_o when_o jehoram_n king_n of_o israel_n say_v 33._o behold_v this_o evil_a be_v of_o the_o lord_n what_o shall_v i_o wait_v for_o the_o lord_n any_o long_o and_o when_o nabuchadnezzar_n say_v 15._o who_o be_v that_o god_n that_o shall_v deliver_v you_o out_o of_o my_o hand_n and_o when_o the_o wicked_a in_o job_n time_n say_v 15._o what_o be_v the_o almighty_a that_o we_o shall_v serve_v he_o and_o what_o
but_o we_o keep_v nothing_o from_o satan_n which_o be_v his_o due_n he_o seek_v to_o get_v those_o from_o christ_n who_o christ_n have_v dear_o buy_v even_o with_o the_o price_n of_o his_o own_o blood_n it_o be_v therefore_o a_o diabolical_a property_n to_o raise_v unjust_a quarrel_n and_o by_o force_n to_o seek_v to_o wring_v from_o any_o that_o which_o he_o have_v no_o right●_n unto_o if_o we_o be_v thus_o set_v upon_o lawful_o we_o may_v defend_v ourselves_o and_o with_o confidence_n call_v for_o god_n aid_n yea_o also_o in_o faith_n depend_v upon_o he_o §._o 3._o of_o resist_v one_o offensive_a weapon_n the_o word_n of_o god_n enemy_n which_o be_v a_o sword_n be_v put_v into_o our_o hand_n so_o that_o just_a occasion_n be_v offer_v we_o may_v and_o aught_o to_o do_v our_o best_a to_o repel_v and_o drive_v away_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o instrument_n hereof_o i_o shall_v speak_v more_o large_o on_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o 17._o ver_fw-la §._o 4._o of_o stand_v at_o defiance_n every_o part_n and_o piece_n of_o this_o armour_n fly_v be_v for_o the_o forepart_n of_o a_o man_n never_o a_o piece_n for_o his_o back_n or_o hind-part_n what_o do_v this_o imply_v but_o that_o we_o shall_v always_o stand_v against_o our_o enemy_n face_n to_o face_n and_o never_o show_v they_o our_o back_n never_o fly_v from_o they_o but_o have_v 11._o n●hemias_n holy_a resolution_n and_o say_v shall_v such_o as_o we_o fly_v oft_o we_o be_v stir_v up_o to_o fight_v wrestle_v stand_v resist_v etc._n etc._n never_o persuade_v in_o the_o whole_a book_n of_o god_n to_o fly_v that_o be_v to_o yield_v the_o victory_n unto_o satan_n we_o may_v wise_o avoid_v his_o temptation_n and_o not_o yield_v to_o they_o when_o by_o they_o he_o seek_v to_o draw_v we_o from_o the_o service_n of_o our_o lord_n to_o his_o slavery_n and_o thus_o 14._o we_o be_v command_v to_o to_o fly_v from_o idolatry_n to_o 22._o fly_v from_o the_o lust_n of_o youth_n etc._n etc._n but_o timorous_o to_o cease_v from_o resist_a temptation_n and_o withstand_v the_o devil_n be_v dangerous_a to_o ourselves_o and_o dishonourable_a to_o god_n it_o make_v satan_n even_o insult_v over_o god_n himself_o 5._o who_o soldier_n we_o be_v and_o get_v great_a advantage_n against_o we_o for_o fly_v from_o god_n who_o have_v we_o to_o fly_v unto_o be_v out_o of_o god_n protection_n the_o devil_n will_v soon_o make_v a_o prey_n of_o us._n let_v we_o not_o think_v that_o if_o we_o yield_v the_o field_n the_o devil_n will_v be_v content_v it_o be_v not_o the_o glory_n of_o conquest_n that_o he_o seek_v so_o much_o as_o our_o destruction_n 8._o he_o seek_v who_o to_o devour_v §._o 5._o of_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o our_o armour_n in_o this_o particular_a enumeration_n of_o these_o several_a piece_n fence_v i_o find_v a_o christian_a soldier_n arm_v from_o top_n to_o toe_n for_o here_o be_v a_o helmet_n for_o his_o head_n and_o face_n a_o breastplate_n together_o with_o the_o tasset_n and_o cush_n from_o neck_n to_o middle_n and_o from_o thence_o to_o the_o knee_n a_o girdle_n to_o knit_v they_o together_o greaves_n from_o knee_n to_o the_o sole_n of_o the_o foot_n a_o sword_n for_o the_o right_a hand_n and_o a_o shield_n for_o the_o left_a well_o therefore_o may_v the_o apostle_n term_v it_o whole_a armour_n use_v 1_o so_o whole_a and_o complete_a be_v this_o armour_n as_o we_o need_v seek_v for_o no_o other_o to_o add_v to_o it_o or_o to_o cover_v it_o over_o as_o it_o be_v madness_n to_o reject_v this_o and_o trust_v to_o the_o clout_n and_o paper_n armour_n of_o papist_n and_o worldling_n so_o it_o be_v childishness_n and_o mere_a folly_n to_o cover_v this_o whole_a armour_n over_o with_o any_o other_o and_o so_o needless_o clog_v the_o soul_n yea_o it_o be_v derogatory_n to_o god_n honour_n and_o wisdom_n and_o a_o degree_n of_o presumption_n such_o be_v they_o as_o acknowledge_v and_o believe_v that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v perfect_a and_o yet_o think_v it_o no_o harm_n to_o have_v humane_a tradition_n add_v thereto_o or_o that_o christ_n only_o be_v able_a to_o save_v and_o yet_o the_o help_n of_o saint_n to_o do_v no_o harm_n or_o that_o faith_n only_o be_v sufficient_a for_o justification_n and_o yet_o no_o hurt_n to_o join_v work_n also_o with_o faith_n in_o the_o office_n of_o justify_v a_o sinner_n etc._n etc._n use_v 2_o let_v our_o care_n be_v to_o be_v arm_v with_o this_o whole_a armour_n and_o every_o piece_n of_o it_o and_o so_o we_o may_v well_o content_v ourselves_o therewith_o bold_o may_v we_o defy_v our_o enemy_n have_v it_o on_o and_o not_o fear_v what_o they_o can_v do_v unto_o us._n these_o use_n have_v be_v large_o handle_v so_o as_o i_o need_v not_o now_o further_o insist_v upon_o they_o the_o three_o part_n girdle_n of_o truth_n ephes_n 6._o 14._o have_v your_o loin_n gird_v about_o with_o truth_n §._o 1._o of_o the_o diverse_a kind_n of_o truth_n the_o first_o piece_n of_o spiritual_a armour_n here_o in_o order_n set_v down_o by_o the_o apostle_n be_v truth_n in_o handle_v whereof_o i_o will_v show_v first_o what_o truth_n be_v here_o mean_v second_o how_o fit_o it_o be_v compare_v to_o a_o girdle_n three_o what_o account_n be_v to_o be_v make_v thereof_o four_o what_o wile_n the_o devil_n have_v to_o wrest_v it_o from_o we_o for_o the_o first_o there_o be_v in_o man_n a_o fourfold_a truth_n 1._o of_o judgement_n judgement_n 2._o of_o heart_n 3._o of_o speech_n 4._o of_o action_n truth_n of_o judgement_n be_v when_o a_o man_n judgement_n agreee_v with_o god_n word_n which_o be_v the_o touchstone_n of_o truth_n so_o as_o the_o principle_n of_o that_o religion_n which_o he_o profess_v and_o his_o opinion_n concern_v the_o same_o be_v ground_v thereon_o and_o may_v be_v warrant_v thereby_o when_o the_o understanding_n of_o man_n be_v enlighten_v by_o god_n spirit_n and_o inform_v by_o his_o word_n remain_v settle_v and_o establish_v in_o that_o doctrine_n which_o the_o word_n of_o god_n teach_v then_o be_v there_o truth_n in_o his_o judgement_n this_o truth_n be_v it_o for_o which_o 12._o saint_n peter_n commend_v the_o distress_a jew_n to_o who_o he_o write_v and_o which_o 15_o saint_n paul_n exhort_v the_o ephesian_n to_o follow_v this_o be_v oppose_v to_o error_n truth_n of_o heart_n be_v the_o singleness_n and_o sincerity_n thereof_o heart_n whereby_o a_o man_n seek_v to_o approve_v himself_o unto_o god_n the_o searcher_n of_o all_o heart_n and_o to_o be_v accept_v of_o he_o 6._o this_o be_v that_o truth_n in_o the_o inward_a affection_n which_o god_n love_v and_o 3._o wherewith_o hezekiah_n comfort_v himself_o yea_o which_o he_o plead_v before_o the_o lord_n when_o he_o have_v receive_v a_o sentence_n of_o death_n this_o be_v oppose_v to_o hypocrisy_n truth_n of_o speech_n be_v a_o agreement_n of_o the_o word_n of_o a_o man_n mouth_n both_o with_o his_o mind_n speech_n and_o also_o with_o the_o matter_n which_o he_o utter_v this_o be_v it_o whereunto_o we_o be_v exhort_v ephes_n 4._o vers_fw-la 25._o speak_v the_o truth_n and_o 1._o which_o the_o apostle_n oft_o affirm_v of_o himself_o this_o be_v oppose_v to_o lie_v 7._o when_o a_o man_n speak_v against_o his_o mind_n and_o conscience_n and_o to_o falsehood_n when_o a_o man_n speak_v contrary_a to_o the_o thing_n itself_o truth_n of_o action_n action_n be_v a_o plain_a faithful_a and_o honest_a deal_n in_o all_o thing_n whether_o we_o have_v to_o do_v with_o god_n or_o man_n when_o man_n neither_o make_v show_v of_o do_v that_o which_o indeed_o they_o do_v not_o or_o of_o do_v it_o otherwise_o then_o they_o do_v 〈◊〉_d this_o truth_n be_v in_o nathaniel_n in_o which_o respect_n christ_n call_v he_o a_o israelite_n in_o truth_n this_o be_v oppose_v to_o dissimulation_n and_o deceit_n §._o 5._o what_o kind_n of_o truth_n be_v here_o mean_v some_o apply_v the_o truth_n here_o mention_v to_o doctrine_n and_o religion_n as_o if_o only_a the_o soundness_n of_o it_o be_v mean_v other_o restrain_v it_o to_o the_o uprightness_n and_o sincerity_n of_o our_o heart_n and_o affection_n other_o understand_v it_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o our_o word_n and_o speech_n and_o other_o expound_v it_o of_o the_o purity_n and_o innocency_n of_o our_o practice_n and_o carriage_n but_o whosoever_o exclude_v any_o of_o these_o forename_a branch_n of_o truth_n come_v as_o i_o take_v it_o short_a of_o the_o apostle_n meaning_n all_o of_o they_o must_v concur_v to_o make_v up_o the_o strength_n and_o beauty_n of_o this_o girdle_n for_o truth_n be_v a_o general_a property_n salt_n which_o as_o salt_n season_v every_o thing_n and_o make_v it_o savoury_a to_o god_n and_o man_n the_o whole_a lump_n must_v be_v leaven_a with_o it_o i_o mean_v the_o whole_a man_n
other_o side_n much_o trouble_n &_o great_a persecution_n be_v raise_v if_o they_o cannot_v clean_o overthrow_v truth_n yet_o they_o will_v do_v what_o they_o can_v to_o adulterate_a it_o witness_v the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n time_n and_o every_o age_n ever_o since_o i_o will_v our_o age_n and_o country_n be_v free_a from_o it_o behold_v how_o busy_a popish_a jesuit_n priest_n and_o friar_n be_v what_o will_v they_o not_o give_v what_o will_v they_o not_o do_v to_o dispossess_v we_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o religion_n §._o 13._o how_o sincerity_n be_v assault_v so_o likewise_o for_o sincerity_n how_o do_v profane_a worldling_n seek_v to_o wrest_v it_o from_o we_o endeavour_v to_o make_v we_o odious_a to_o all_o because_o we_o will_v not_o yield_v to_o they_o these_o be_v as_o spiteful_o bend_v against_o we_o for_o sincerity_n truth_n and_o honesty_n in_o our_o heart_n word_n and_o action_n as_o papist_n be_v for_o verity_n and_o soundness_n of_o doctrine_n for_o some_o hate_n those_o that_o be_v honest_a and_o upright_o as_o 8._o ahab_n hate_v micaiah_n some_o scoff_n at_o they_o as_o 9_o ishmael_n at_o isaac_n say_v plain_a deal_n be_v a_o jewel_n proverb_n and_o he_o that_o use_v it_o will_v die_v a_o beggar_n yea_o they_o will_v not_o stick_v to_o brand_v they_o with_o the_o odious_a term_n of_o hypocrisy_n and_o dissimulation_n though_o of_o all_o sort_n of_o people_n they_o be_v far_a from_o it_o especial_o if_o god_n suffer_v any_o affliction_n to_o fall_v on_o they_o as_o 9_o on_o his_o servant_n job_n then_o with_o e_o job_n wife_n and_o friend_n they_o will_v be_v ready_a to_o upbraid_v unto_o they_o their_o integrity_n and_o uprightness_n as_o if_o all_o have_v be_v only_o in_o show_n to_o blear_v man_n eye_n but_o if_o any_o that_o indeed_o with_o a_o hollow_a heart_n have_v make_v profession_n do_v fall_v away_o and_o so_o be_v discover_v as_o judas_n ananias_n demas_n and_o such_o other_o their_o example_n shall_v be_v cast_v in_o the_o tooth_n of_o the_o most_o upright_o and_o if_o notwithstanding_o all_o this_o they_o shall_v remain_v constant_a as_o job_n do_v and_o not_o suffer_v their_o innocency_n and_o integrity_n to_o be_v outface_v 5._o then_o will_v they_o object_v against_o they_o the_o censure_n of_o other_o man_n and_o say_v of_o they_o how_o soever_o you_o think_v of_o yourselves_o yet_o other_o and_o those_o good_a man_n too_o think_v not_o so_o well_o of_o you_o if_o you_o be_v wise_a you_o will_v give_v more_o credit_n to_o other_o man_n judgement_n then_o to_o your_o own_o for_o man_n be_v blind_a and_o partial_a in_o judge_v themselves_o many_o by_o these_o and_o such_o like_a discouragement_n have_v be_v move_v to_o make_v no_o account_n of_o truth_n but_o to_o leave_v it_o to_o such_o as_o better_o esteem_v it_o they_o they_o other_o to_o cast_v it_o away_o and_o to_o yield_v to_o the_o time_n both_o for_o religion_n and_o conversation_n show_v themselves_o as_o superstitious_a or_o profane_a as_o the_o worst_a i_o will_v therefore_o as_o a_o antidote_n against_o those_o poisonous_a objection_n discover_v the_o vanity_n of_o they_o and_o show_v how_o these_o wile_n may_v be_v avoid_v §._o 14._o of_o the_o necessity_n of_o truth_n in_o religion_n 1_o against_o fast_a hold_v truth_n in_o judgement_n two_o thing_n be_v especial_o object_v one_o that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a the_o other_o that_o it_o be_v dangerous_a object_n 1._o they_o say_v it_o be_v not_o necessary_a religion_n because_o a_o man_n may_v be_v save_v in_o any_o religion_n answ_n this_o be_v a_o mo●t_o false_a and_o impious_a position_n the_o very_a bane_n of_o true_a religion_n the_o apostle_n express_o say_v there_o be_v 5._o one_o faith_n in_o that_o christ_n term_v himself_o 6._o the_o way_n the_o truth_n the_o life_n do_v he_o not_o imply_v that_o he_o be_v the_o only_a true_a way_n that_o lead_v to_o life_n 8._o that_o curse_n which_o the_o apostle_n thunder_v out_o against_o all_o that_o preach_v any_o otherwise_o then_o he_o have_v preach_v aught_o to_o terrify_v we_o from_o yield_v to_o any_o thing_n but_o the_o truth_n 12_o he_o pronounce_v they_o damn_v which_o believe_v not_o the_o truth_n §._o 15._o of_o the_o pretend_a danger_n in_o maintain_v truth_n object_n 2._o the_o danger_n which_o they_o allege_v be_v either_o in_o regard_n of_o conspiracy_n treason_n and_o insurrection_n which_o prince_n and_o governous_a be_v subject_a unto_o if_o they_o be_v too_o stiff_a in_o maintain_v truth_n of_o religion_n or_o persecution_n which_o subject_n be_v like_a to_o fall_v into_o if_o they_o be_v too_o resolute_a in_o profess_v the_o truth_n answ_n for_o the_o danger_n of_o prince_n and_o magistrate_n truth_n they_o need_v not_o to_o fear_v 〈◊〉_d because_o they_o have_v god_n to_o watch_v over_o they_o and_o to_o be_v their_o protector_n so_o long_o as_o they_o maintain_v the_o truth_n not_o to_o search_v after_o example_n of_o other_o age_n and_o place_n consider_v how_o miraculous_o god_n preserve_v queen_n elizabeth_n of_o bless_a memory_n both_o from_o invasion_n of_o enemy_n abroad_o and_o also_o from_o many_o conspiracy_n of_o traitor_n at_o home_n after_o 44._o year_n and_o 4._o month_n prosperous_a reign_n in_o peace_n she_o end_v her_o day_n notwithstanding_o all_o danger_n whatsoever_o many_o treason_n close_o cruel_a treason_n such_o as_o the_o like_a in_o all_o former_a age_n have_v not_o be_v hear_v of_o have_v also_o be_v intend_v against_o our_o present_a royal_a sovereign_n what_o have_v be_v the_o issue_n they_o which_o lay_v the_o snare_n be_v catch_v themselves_o and_o he_o yet_o remain_v safe_a and_o long_o may_v he_o remain_v safe_a sure_o god_n have_v respect_n to_o the_o truth_n which_o have_v be_v and_o still_o be_v maintain_v in_o this_o land_n king_n our_o neighbour_n king_n think_v to_o avoid_v danger_n by_o let_v go_v ●he_v truth_n and_o yield_v to_o idolatry_n but_o thereby_o he_o cast_v himself_o out_o of_o the_o protection_n of_o the_o god_n of_o truth_n what_o follow_v thereupon_o joy_n one_o sorry_a villain_n slay_v he_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o his_o guard_n as_o for_o the_o persecution_n which_o be_v raise_v against_o other_o 11_o it_o be_v a_o note_n of_o blessedness_n 13._o a_o matter_n of_o rejoice_v and_o in_o this_o respect_n a_o strong_a motive_n to_o persuade_v we_o fast_o to_o hold_v truth_n §._o 16._o of_o the_o pretend_a trouble_n of_o conscience_n which_o sincerity_n be_v say_v to_o cause_n 2_o against_o truth_n of_o heart_n and_o remain_v steadfast_a therein_o be_v object_v 1._o vexation_n of_o mind_n 2._o wearisomeness_n 3._o outward_a trouble_n 4._o the_o judgement_n of_o other_o man_n object_n 1._o the_o devil_n suggest_v to_o many_o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a always_o to_o keep_v the_o heart_n upright_o and_o that_o if_o there_o be_v a_o little_a fail_n the_o conscience_n be_v so_o trouble_v as_o it_o can_v hardly_o if_o at_o all_o be_v quiet_v and_o thereupon_o infer_v that_o it_o be_v best_a not_o at_o all_o to_o regard_v truth_n of_o heart_n answ_n despair_n there_o can_v be_v no_o better_o no_o more_o sovereign_a a_o preservative_n against_o trouble_n of_o conscience_n than_o truth_n of_o heart_n 6._o this_o keep_v job_n from_o despair_n this_o make_v hezekiah_n bold_a 3._o truth_n of_o heart_n be_v a_o strong_a prop_n to_o a_o man_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o his_o manifold_a infirmity_n for_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o keep_v the_o heart_n free_a from_o all_o corruption_n but_o yet_o there_o may_v be_v truth_n in_o heart_n every_o corruption_n though_o it_o argue_v imperfection_n yet_o it_o argue_v not_o hypocrisy_n if_o it_o steal_v into_o the_o heart_n against_o our_o honest_a purpose_n and_o against_o our_o earnest_a desire_n and_o be_v discern_v cause_v godly_a sorrow_n and_o christian_a watchfulness_n both_o in_o purge_v the_o heart_n of_o that_o which_o be_v intre_v in_o and_o also_o in_o keep_v it_o that_o the_o like_a enter_v not_o in_o again_o but_o where_o there_o be_v no_o truth_n of_o heart_n it_o be_v utter_o impossible_a that_o there_o shall_v be_v any_o sound_a comfort_n if_o such_o a_o man_n conscience_n be_v ever_o trouble_v it_o will_v be_v overwhelm_v and_o drown_v in_o despair_n §._o 17._o of_o the_o pretend_a wearisomeness_n of_o sincerity_n object_n 2._o again_o he_o suggest_v that_o it_o be_v a_o wearisome_a thing_n to_o keep_v the_o girdle_n of_o truth_n always_o close_o unto_o us._n none_o can_v hold_v out_o the_o most_o upright_o have_v fall_v away_o as_o demas_n and_o other_o answ_n sweet_a it_o seem_v wearisome_a only_o to_o those_o who_o never_o feel_v it_o never_o know_v it_o i_o may_v say_v of_o it_o as_o 30._o christ_n of_o his_o yoke_n it_o be_v easy_a and_o light_a yea_o it_o be_v sweet_a and_o pleasant_a to_o he_o that_o indeed_o taste_v of_o it_o as_o
faith_n from_o faith_n proceed_v all_o good_a work_n for_o it_o be_v faith_n in_o god_n love_n which_o move_v a_o man_n to_o love_n god_n again_o and_o love_n to_o god_n be_v it_o which_o move_v a_o man_n to_o love_v his_o brother_n which_o be_v make_v after_o god_n image_n and_o stand_v in_o god_n room_n and_o steed_n now_o there_o can_v be_v no_o strong_a motive_n to_o stir_v up_o a_o man_n to_o any_o duty_n than_o love_n a_o love_a child_n will_v much_o more_o seek_v to_o please_v his_o father_n than_o a_o servile_a bondslave_n and_o a_o love_a friend_n will_v do_v much_o more_o kindness_n for_o a_o friend_n than_o a_o stranger_n though_o he_o be_v hire_v thereunto_o he_o that_o indeed_o believe_v that_o god_n so_o love_v he_o as_o he_o spare_v not_o his_o only_o beget_v son_n but_o give_v he_o a_o price_n of_o redemption_n that_o in_o his_o son_n god_n have_v vouchsafe_v to_o be_v reconcile_v to_o he_o to_o give_v he_o pardon_v of_o all_o his_o sin_n freedom_n from_o hell_n and_o damnation_n and_o to_o bestow_v on_o he_o all_o thing_n pertain_v to_o life_n and_o happiness_n he_o that_o be_v thus_o persuade_v of_o god_n love_n to_o he_o can_v but_o have_v his_o hearten_v arge_v to_o do_v what_o may_v be_v please_v and_o acceptable_a to_o god_n no_o hope_n of_o reward_n no_o fear_n of_o revenge_n can_v so_o provoke_v a_o man_n to_o all_o good_a work_n as_o love_v which_o faith_n work_v beside_o 6._o whatsoever_o be_v perform_v without_o faith_n and_o love_n be_v no_o whit_n acceptable_a to_o god_n god_n accept_v a_o cup_n of_o cold_a water_n give_v in_o faith_n and_o love_n infinite_o much_o more_o than_o thousand_o of_o ram_n or_o ten_o thousand_o river_n of_o oil_n give_v in_o way_n of_o presumptuous_a merit_n or_o else_o of_o slavish_a fear_n the_o objection_n therefore_o of_o our_o adversary_n against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n 1._o be_v a_o mere_a cavil_n and_o slander_n they_o who_o take_v liberty_n thereby_o either_o to_o commit_v any_o evil_n or_o to_o omit_v any_o good_a turn_v the_o grace_n of_o our_o god_n into_o wantonness_n jude_n 4._o and_o pervert_v it_o to_o their_o own_o destruction_n 2._o pet_n 3._o 16._o §._o 11._o of_o faith_n in_o general_n thus_o much_o concern_v the_o transition_n the_o exhortation_n follow_v wherein_o we_o be_v first_o to_o consider_v the_o thing_n simple_o set_v down_o and_o to_o show_v what_o faith_n be_v point_n 2_o faith_n in_o general_n be_v a_o believe_v of_o a_o thing_n to_o be_v true_a be_v our_o english_a word_n faith_n seem_v to_o be_v take_v from_o the_o latin_a fides_fw-la which_o according_a to_o the_o notation_n thereof_o be_v as_o much_o as_o 1_o fi●t_z dictum_fw-la be_v it_o so_o as_o be_v speak_v 〈◊〉_d the_o notation_n of_o the_o greek_a word_n imply_v as_o much_o so_o also_o of_o the_o ●_o hebrew_n in_o which_o language_n one_o and_o the_o same_o word_n signify_v truth_n &_o faith_n from_o whence_o be_v derive_v that_o common_a hebrew_n word_n which_o be_v usual_o utter_v at_o the_o end_n of_o our_o prayer_n amen_n which_o signify_v a_o assent_n of_o the_o mind_n to_o that_o which_o be_v speak_v as_o to_o truth_n §._o 12._o of_o the_o kind_n of_o faith_n this_o assent_n may_v be_v either_o to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o cre●●●_n or_o of_o the_o creature_n the_o faith_n of_o which_o now_o we_o speak_v have_v reference_n to_o the_o creator_n and_o his_o word_n and_o may_v in_o general_n be_v define_v a_o belief_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n faith_n thus_o take_v be_v either_o common_a to_o all_o or_o proper_a to_o the_o elect_a that_o common_a faith_n be_v extraordinary_a or_o ordinary_a 22._o extraordinary_a faith_n faith_n be_v a_o belief_n that_o some_o extraordinary_a and_o miraculous_a thing_n shall_v fall_v out_o this_o be_v ground_v either_o upon_o some_o especial_a promise_n or_o extraordinary_a revelation_n make_v to_o the_o party_n in_o who_o it_o be_v and_o it_o be_v give_v but_o at_o some_o special_a time_n to_o some_o special_a person_n on_o some_o special_a occasion_n 51_o by_o it_o thing_n to_o come_v may_v be_v foretell_v or_o other_o 22._o great_a work_n do_v it_o be_v a_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n but_o one_o of_o those_o which_o be_v give_v rather_o for_o the_o good_a of_o other_o then_o of_o that_o party_n which_o have_v it_o 10._o so_o as_o it_o may_v be_v in_o a_o wicked_a reprobate_n 22._o as_o in_o those_o who_o shall_v plead_v it_o at_o christ_n judgement_n seat_n but_o in_o vain_a this_o be_v that_o which_o common_o be_v call_v a_o miraculous_a faith_n ordinary_a faith_n faith_n be_v either_o that_o which_o rest_v only_o in_o the_o mind_n of_o a_o man_n or_o else_o draw_v the_o will_n also_o the_o former_a of_o these_o be_v that_o faith_n whereby_o a_o assent_n be_v give_v to_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n word_n this_o be_v common_o call_v as_o historical_a faith_n because_o thereby_o credence_n be_v yield_v to_o the_o history_n of_o god_n word_n that_o be_v all_o thing_n which_o be_v write_v in_o god_n word_n be_v believe_v to_o be_v true_a this_o may_v one_o do_v which_o be_v not_o any_o whit_n the_o better_a affect_a 〈◊〉_d god_n word_n either_o to_o love_n god_n or_o fear_v he_o or_o trust_v in_o he_o the_o more_o for_o this_o faith_n for_o thus_o the_o very_a 19_o di●el●_n be_v say_v to_o believe_v the_o latter_a kind_n of_o ordinary_a faith_n common_a to_o all_o sort_n faith_n as_o well_o reprobate_a as_o elect_v be_v that_o faith_n whereby_o such_o a_o assent_n of_o the_o mind_n be_v give_v to_o the_o gospel_n and_o to_o the_o gracious_a promise_n thereof_o as_o the_o heart_n be_v affect_v with_o they_o and_o rejoice_v in_o they_o for_o a_o season_n 13._o this_o be_v in_o simon_n magus_n who_o in_o regard_n thereof_o yield_v to_o be_v baptize_v and_o in_o those_o jew_n who_o be_v willing_a for_o a_o season_n to_o rejoice_v in_o 35._o johns_n light_n this_o be_v common_o call_v a_o temporary_a faith_n because_o it_o last_v not_o for_o ever_o but_o clean_o fade_v away_o and_o that_o for_o the_o most_o part_n while_o a_o man_n live_v here_o in_o this_o world_n especial_o if_o he_o be_v bring_v to_o any_o trial_n 13._o christ_n fit_o compare_v this_o faith_n to_o corn_n sow_v in_o stony_a ground_n i_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o it_o may_v continue_v so_o long_o as_o a_o man_n live_v but_o then_o with_o his_o life_n it_o end_v without_o any_o fruit_n as_o smoke_n that_o clean_o vanish_v away_o to_o nothing_o in_o which_o respect_n faith_n the_o hope_n of_o a_o wicked_a man_n be_v say_v to_o perish_v when_o he_o die_v this_o faith_n be_v also_o call_v a_o hypocritical_a faith_n not_o because_o he_o that_o have_v it_o do_v only_o make_v a_o outward_a flourish_n in_o show_n purposely_o to_o deceive_v man_n for_o than_o can_v not_o the_o heart_n be_v affect_v nor_o the_o man_n rejoice_v therein_o but_o because_o it_o be_v not_o sound_a but_o appear_v both_o to_o the_o party_n himself_o hypocrisy_n and_o also_o to_o other_o to_o be_v better_a and_o sound_a than_o indeed_o it_o be_v for_o there_o be_v a_o double_a hypocrisy_n one_o whereby_o man_n purposely_o seek_v to_o deceive_v other_o as_o the_o 25._o pharisee_n another_o whereby_o they_o deceive_v themselves_o as_o 6._o paul_n that_o former_a arise_v from_o vainglory_n covetousness_n and_o such_o by_o respect_n this_o latter_a from_o ignorance_n simplicity_n slothfulness_n carelessness_n security_n and_o the_o like_a which_o keep_v man_n from_o try_v that_o grace_n which_o appear_v to_o be_v in_o ●hem_n whether_o it_o be_v sound_a or_o no._n this_o faith_n be_v call_v hypocritical_a in_o opposition_n to_o a_o attribute_n proper_a to_o true_a ●aving_a faith_n namely_o 〈◊〉_d unfeigned_a §._o 13._o of_o the_o title_n give_v to_o true_a faith_n the_o faith_n which_o be_v here_o mean_v by_o the_o apostle_n faith_n be_v a_o far_o more_o precious_a faith_n then_o any_o of_o these_o it_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o elect_n and_o by_o a_o propriety_n call_v 1._o the_o faith_n of_o god_n elect_n for_o none_o but_o the_o elect_n have_v it_o and_o all_o the_o elect_n have_v it_o at_o one_o time_n or_o another_o when_o once_o they_o have_v it_o they_o never_o utter_o or_o total_o lose_v it_o but_o it_o continue_v with_o they_o till_o it_o have_v bring_v they_o to_o the_o purchase_a inheritance_n even_o to_o the_o possession_n &_o fruition_n of_o that_o which_o they_o believe_v at_o which_o time_n they_o shall_v have_v no_o more_o need_n of_o it_o it_o be_v therefore_o call_v save_v faith_n because_o 8._o it_o bring_v we_o unto_o salvation_n and_o justify_v faith_n because_o it_o be_v that_o mean_n or_o instrument_n which_o god_n spirit_n work_v in_o we_o whereby_o we_o apply_v unto_o ourselves_o christ_n jesus_n
that_o doubt_v 24_o a_o counsellor_n to_o the_o unlearned_a 4._o a_o teacher_n and_o what_o be_v it_o not_o it_o be_v all_o thing_n to_o all_o man_n use_v 1_o o_o excellent_a instrument_n how_o much_o bind_v unto_o god_n be_v we_o for_o it_o weapon_n what_o account_n ought_v we_o to_o make_v of_o it_o how_o expert_a ought_v we_o to_o be_v in_o it_o whosoever_o careless_o neglect_v it_o or_o light_o esteem_v it_o be_v most_o ungrateful_a to_o god_n who_o in_o wisdom_n and_o goodness_n have_v provide_v it_o for_o he_o and_o most_o injurious_a to_o himself_o in_o lose_v the_o use_n and_o benefit_n of_o such_o a_o weapon_n §._o 12._o of_o the_o wrong_n which_o papist_n do_v in_o detain_v the_o word_n use_v 2_o what_o enemy_n to_o the_o safety_n and_o salvation_n of_o people_n be_v papist_n word_n who_o like_o the_o philistines_n 1_o sam._n 13._o 19_o 22._o deprive_v they_o of_o this_o weapon_n herein_o they_o plain_o declare_v themselves_o to_o be_v servant_n of_o antichrist_n and_o enemy_n of_o christ_n they_o do_v even_o conspire_v with_o satan_n himself_o and_o so_o also_o do_v all_o they_o which_o open_o or_o covert_o speak_v against_o private_a read_n and_o public_a preach_v of_o the_o word_n who_o scoff_n at_o that_o knowledge_n which_o lie_v man_n and_o woman_n have_v in_o god_n word_n §._o 13._o of_o neglect_v god_n word_n use_v 3_o as_o for_o those_o who_o themselves_o neglect_v or_o reject_v soul_n or_o abuse_v god_n word_n what_o enemy_n be_v they_o to_o their_o own_o soul_n make_v way_n to_o their_o own_o destruction_n too_o many_o so_o do_v as_o 1_o they_o who_o care_v not_o to_o read_v it_o all_o or_o hear_v it_o at_o all_o of_o all_o book_n they_o least_o respect_v the_o bible_n many_o will_v have_v statute_n book_n chronicle_n yea_o playbook_n and_o such_o like_a toyish_a pamphlet_n but_o not_o a_o bible_n in_o their_o house_n or_o hand_n yea_o which_o be_v very_o lamentable_a some_o scholar_n which_o intend_v to_o be_v divine_n have_v and_o read_v store_n of_o postil_v legend_n and_o such_o like_a trash_n and_o yet_o be_v stranger_n to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n some_o use_n to_o carry_v other_o book_n with_o they_o to_o church_n even_o then_o to_o draw_v away_o their_o mind_n from_o hear_v god_n word_n when_o it_o be_v read_v and_o preach_v by_o other_o some_o go_v yet_o further_o and_o will_v not_o suffer_v their_o wife_n child_n or_o other_o of_o their_o household_n to_o read_v the_o word_n and_o some_o scoff_n at_o such_o as_o carry_v the_o scripture_n with_o they_o to_o church_n term_v they_o in_o reproach_n biblecarrier_n all_o these_o and_o all_o other_o like_o these_o have_v no_o sword_n at_o all_o 2_o they_o who_o have_v bibles_n it_o and_o it_o may_v be_v fair_o bind_v up_o but_o why_o only_o to_o lie_v in_o their_o house_n or_o to_o carry_v with_o they_o to_o church_n they_o read_v it_o if_o at_o all_o as_o seldom_o as_o may_v be_v their_o worldly_a affair_n will_v afford_v they_o no_o time_n to_o read_v the_o scripture_n how_o many_o be_v there_o that_o never_o in_o their_o life_n read_v through_o all_o the_o scripture_n if_o ever_o they_o read_v through_o any_o one_o book_n these_o have_v a_o sword_n but_o to_o hang_v by_o the_o wall_n 3_o they_o who_o read_v much_o not_o but_o only_o read_v never_o search_v the_o scripture_n to_o find_v out_o the_o true_a sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o it_o much_o like_a unto_o superstitious_a papist_n who_o content_n themselves_o with_o mumble_v over_o at_o set_a time_n a_o certain_a number_n of_o prayer_n stint_v by_o their_o bead_n not_o regard_v what_o they_o pray_v these_o have_v their_o sword_n always_o in_o the_o scabbard_n 4_o they_o who_o as_o they_o read_v it_o so_o seek_v for_o the_o true_a sense_n but_o to_o what_o end_n only_o to_o understand_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o history_n to_o reconcile_v seem_v difference_n to_o maintain_v discourse_n or_o it_o may_v be_v also_o to_o justify_v the_o truth_n of_o doctrine_n against_o gainsayers_a but_o not_o to_o be_v edify_v in_o faith_n and_o to_o have_v sin_n mortify_v thereby_o these_o draw_v forth_o this_o sword_n only_o to_o flourish_v with_o it_o 5_o they_o who_o in_o search_v out_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n it_o trust_v to_o their_o own_o skill_n wit_n and_o understanding_n &_o neglect_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n whereby_o this_o sword_n be_v as_o it_o be_v whet_v and_o make_v sharp_a and_o they_o teach_v well_o to_o use_v it_o these_o foolish_a and_o over_o bold_a soldier_n care_v not_o how_o unskilful_a themselves_o be_v or_o how_o blunt_a their_o weapon_n be_v 6_o they_o who_o do_v all_o they_o can_v to_o be_v expert_a in_o god_n word_n truth_n but_o with_o a_o traitorous_a mind_n to_o fight_v against_o the_o truth_n contain_v therein_o as_o heretic_n yea_o and_o it_o may_v be_v to_o overthrow_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o word_n itself_o as_o many_o atheist_n these_o fight_n with_o christ_n weapon_n under_o satan_n colour_n against_o christ_n himself_o §._o 14._o answer_v to_o satan_n suggestion_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o god_n word_n the_o chief_a sleight_n which_o satan_n have_v to_o deprive_v we_o of_o this_o weapon_n be_v these_o word_n sug._n 1._o there_o be_v no_o such_o word_n of_o god_n at_o all_o that_o scripture_n which_o be_v call_v god_n word_n be_v not_o inspire_v of_o god_n but_o so_o say_v to_o be_v only_o to_o make_v man_n to_o give_v great_a credence_n thereto_o thus_o before_o god_n word_n be_v write_v satan_n bring_v man_n to_o doubt_v of_o that_o revelation_n of_o god_n will_n which_o it_o please_v god_n to_o give_v to_o man_n as_o 4._o our_o first_o parent_n and_o 20._o the_o old_a world_n now_o it_o be_v write_v he_o make_v man_n think_v it_o be_v but_o as_o other_o write_n of_o man_n invention_n herewith_o be_v not_o only_o plain_a atheist_n but_o also_o many_o poor_a distress_a waver_v soul_n deceive_v scripture_n answ_n for_o avoid_v this_o we_o must_v first_o labour_n to_o have_v our_o judgement_n well_o inform_v by_o what_o argument_n we_o can_v of_o the_o divine_a authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n many_o argument_n may_v be_v allege_v to_o this_o purpose_n but_o because_o learned_a man_n have_v take_v good_a pain_n herein_o 3._o &_o publish_v that_o which_o they_o have_v collect_v concern_v this_o point_n in_o print_n i_o will_v refer_v the_o reader_n to_o such_o book_n for_o they_o be_v every_o where_o almost_o to_o be_v have_v among_o other_o argument_n this_o may_v be_v one_o that_o not_o only_o all_o sort_n of_o man_n as_o well_o wicked_a and_o profane_a as_o godly_a and_o religious_a have_v a_o inward_a fear_n and_o dread_a of_o the_o scripture_n and_o bear_v a_o great_a reverence_n thereunto_o but_o even_o they_o who_o gainsay_v the_o divine_a authority_n of_o scripture_n have_v in_o their_o conscience_n a_o secret_a sting_n which_o oft_o prick_v they_o and_o check_v they_o for_o it_o though_o they_o labour_v never_o so_o much_o to_o suppress_v it_o 2_o we_o must_v pray_v for_o the_o spirit_n of_o revelation_n or_o inspiration_n revelation_n which_o may_v inward_o testify_v unto_o our_o spirit_n and_o persuade_v they_o that_o god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 19_o for_o howsoever_o many_o argument_n may_v be_v bring_v to_o evict_v a_o man_n judgement_n thereof_o so_o as_o in_o his_o judgement_n he_o can_v gainsay_v it_o yet_o it_o be_v only_o the_o inward_a testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v able_a to_o persuade_v man_n heart_n thereof_o and_o so_o make_v it_o willing_o embrace_v and_o entertain_v the_o scripture_n as_o god_n word_n 3_o we_o must_v give_v no_o place_n to_o doubt_v about_o this_o point_n doubt_v but_o hold_v it_o as_o a_o principle_n undeniable_a in_o humane_a art_n 5._o the_o professor_n thereof_o teach_v that_o there_o be_v some_o principle_n which_o without_o all_o contradiction_n and_o question_n must_v be_v take_v for_o grant_v so_o as_o if_o any_o deny_v ●hem_n he_o be_v to_o be_v answer_v with_o a_o cudgel_n rather_o than_o ●n_v argument_n for_o example_n if_o any_o deny_v that_o the_o fire_n be_v ●ot_n it_o be_v fit_a to_o thrust_v his_o hand_n or_o foot_n into_o the_o 〈◊〉_d while_o he_o feel_v the_o heat_n of_o it_o then_o by_o reason_n ●ove_n unto_o he_o that_o it_o be_v hot_a if_o any_o humane_a art_n have_v ●ch_o undeniable_a principle_n much_o more_o the_o art_n of_o ●rtes_n divinity_n and_o in_o divinity_n of_o all_o principle_n this_o be_v one_o which_o least_o of_o all_o aught_o to_o be_v bring_v in_o question_n because_o it_o be_v the_o very_a groundwork_n of_o all_o wherefore_o if_o any_o such_o suggestion_n be_v cast_v into_o our_o heart_n by_o satan_n let_v we_o with_o a_o holy_a indignation_n as_o 10._o christ_n do_v when_o he_o be_v
and_o vehement_a asseveration_n hereby_o than_o we_o be_v give_v to_o understand_v that_o the_o truth_n here_o deliver_v be_v a_o weighty_a truth_n not_o light_o to_o be_v regard_v and_o slight_o pass_v over_o for_o he_o which_o give_v this_o commandment_n let_v your_o communication_n be_v yea_o 37._o yea_o nay_o nay_o will_v never_o have_v add_v this_o vehement_a asseveration_n if_o there_o have_v not_o be_v need_v thereof_o the_o reason_n why_o christ_n first_o use_v this_o preface_n be_v to_o move_v they_o who_o hear_v it_o to_o give_v the_o great_a credence_n and_o the_o more_o diligent_a heed_n to_o that_o which_o he_o deliver_v lest_o at_o any_o time_n they_o shall_v let_v it_o slip_v and_o it_o be_v thus_o record_v by_o the_o evangelist_n that_o we_o which_o read_v it_o or_o hear_v shall_v know_v that_o the_o point_n here_o deliver_v be_v worthy_a our_o due_a and_o serious_a meditation_n point_n needful_a to_o be_v teach_v and_o learn_v §._o 5._o of_o god_n mercy_n in_o forgive_a sin_n christ_n have_v raise_v up_o the_o attention_n of_o his_o hearer_n by_o the_o forename_a preface_n in_o the_o next_o place_n he_o mollifi_v the_o severity_n of_o god_n justice_n against_o the_o blasphemy_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o declare_v the_o riches_n of_o his_o mercy_n in_o respect_n of_o all_o other_o sin_n in_o these_o word_n all_o sin_n shall_v be_v forgive_v unto_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o blasphemy_n wherewith_o soever_o they_o blaspheme_v and_o whosoever_o speak_v against_o the_o son_n of_o man_n it_o shall_v be_v forgive_v he_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n here_o propound_v consist_v in_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n the_o great_a evidence_n of_o mercy_n that_o can_v be_v give_v it_o be_v further_a amplify_v 1_o by_o the_o kind_n of_o sin_n set_v down_o both_o general_o all_o sin_n all_o manner_n of_o sin_n and_o particular_o blasphemy_n 2_o by_o the_o person_n that_o commit_v sin_n son_n of_o man_n and_o among_o they_o whosoever_o 3_o by_o the_o person_n against_o who_o the_o sin_n be_v commit_v the_o son_n of_o man_n the_o first_o and_o general_a point_n here_o to_o be_v note_v 21._o be_v that_o sin_n may_v be_v forgive_v a_o point_n well_o know_v to_o all_o that_o know_v the_o end_n of_o christ_n come_n which_o be_v to_o save_v sinner_n and_o the_o true_a scope_n and_o intent_n of_o the_o gospel_n 15._o which_o be_v to_o mitigate_v the_o rigour_n of_o the_o law_n that_o say_v curse_v be_v every_o one_o that_o continue_v not_o in_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o law_n to_o do_v they_o 10._o all_o the_o sacrifice_n under_o the_o law_n prefigure_v the_o truth_n of_o this_o doctrine_n and_o the_o many_o promise_n of_o the_o word_n both_o in_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n together_o with_o the_o manifold_a performance_n thereof_o to_o poor_a sinner_n do_v abundant_o confirm_v the_o same_o the_o true_a proper_a reason_n hereof_o be_v 11._o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n who_o desire_v not_o the_o death_n of_o sinner_n and_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n whereby_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n be_v satisfy_v in_o which_o respect_n christ_n be_v say_v to_o put_v away_o sin_n by_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o himself_o 26._o so_o as_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o sinner_n to_o move_v god_n to_o pass_v by_o his_o sin_n but_o only_o the_o sweet_a concurrence_n of_o mercy_n and_o justice_n in_o god_n admirable_a be_v the_o comfort_n which_o hence_o arise_v to_o poor_a sinner_n sinner_n sin_n make_v the_o creature_n to_o be_v most_o wretched_a and_o curse_a by_o reason_n thereof_o he_o be_v odious_a in_o the_o pure_a eye_n of_o god_n yea_o he_o be_v liable_a to_o the_o infinite_a wrath_n of_o god_n and_o to_o all_o the_o fearful_a fruit_n thereof_o which_o be_v all_o the_o judgement_n and_o plague_n which_o can_v be_v inflict_v on_o body_n or_o soul_n in_o this_o world_n and_o a_o curse_a death_n at_o the_o departure_n out_o of_o this_o world_n and_o eternal_a torment_n and_o torture_v in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v now_o than_o what_o comfort_n can_v be_v minister_v to_o such_o a_o creature_n so_o long_o as_o he_o lie_v under_o sin_n the_o very_a thought_n of_o the_o nature_n and_o issue_n of_o sin_n be_v like_o that_o hand_n write_v which_o appear_v to_o belshazzer_n 6._o and_o change_v his_o countenace_n and_o trouble_v he_o so_o as_o the_o joint_n of_o his_o loin_n be_v loose_v and_o his_o knee_n smite_v one_o against_o another_o but_o what_o comfort_n and_o joy_n will_v it_o bring_v to_o the_o conscience_n of_o such_o a_o sinner_n to_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o christ_n say_v unto_o he_o as_o to_o the_o poor_a palsy_n man_n which_o be_v bring_v before_o he_o son_n be_v of_o good_a comfort_n 2._o thy_o sin_n be_v forgive_v thou_o loe_o christ_n have_v here_o indefinite_o without_o respect_n unto_o any_o particular_a person_n say_v that_o sin_n shall_v be_v forgive_v let_v our_o care_n therefore_o be_v to_o seek_v for_o pardon_n pardon_n and_o not_o despair_n and_o sink_v down_o under_o the_o burden_n of_o sin_n the_o pardon_n be_v purchase_v and_o grant_v let_v not_o we_o reject_v it_o or_o neglect_v it_o 9_o if_o we_o acknowledge_v our_o sin_n he_o be_v faithful_a and_o just_a to_o forgive_v we_o our_o sin_n and_o to_o cleanse_v we_o from_o all_o unrighteousness_n behold_v here_o a_o sure_a ground_n of_o repentance_n sin_n and_o a_o strong_a motive_n to_o stir_v we_o up_o to_o forsake_v our_o sin_n if_o there_o be_v no_o hope_n of_o pardon_n what_o encouragement_n can_v the_o sinner_n have_v to_o turn_v from_o his_o sin_n for_o his_o heart_n will_v thus_o reason_n indeed_o i_o be_o a_o weefull_a wretch_n through_o sin_n but_o what_o will_v it_o now_o boot_n i_o to_o leave_v my_o sin_n my_o judgement_n be_v past_a there_o be_v no_o recall_v of_o it_o there_o remain_v no_o pardon_n but_o assurance_n of_o pardon_n make_v he_o to_o alter_v the_o case_n and_o thus_o to_o reason_n though_o i_o have_v heretofore_o be_v so_o wretched_a as_o by_o sin_n to_o implunge_v myself_o into_o endless_a misery_n yet_o i_o hear_v that_o there_o be_v pardon_n for_o sinner_n sure_o i_o will_v no_o more_o continue_v in_o this_o woeful_a estate_n i_o will_v seek_v pardon_n for_o sin_n past_a and_o be_v watchful_a against_o sin_n for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v be_v there_o no_o hope_n of_o pardon_n of_o sin_n man_n will_v no_o more_o care_n to_o turn_v from_o sin_n than_o the_o devil_n do_v this_o point_n therefore_o of_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n must_v be_v urge_v as_o a_o mean_n and_o motive_n to_o draw_v man_n from_o their_o sin_n and_o to_o work_v in_o they_o true_a and_o sound_a repentance_n that_o repentance_n which_o arise_v from_o faith_n in_o the_o pardon_n of_o sin_n and_o be_v perform_v in_o way_n of_o gratefulness_n unto_o god_n for_o his_o great_a mercy_n in_o pardon_v our_o sin_n be_v the_o most_o kind_o wrought_v and_o will_v prove_v the_o true_a and_o best_a repentance_n §._o 6._o of_o the_o extent_n of_o god_n mercy_n in_o pardon_v all_o sin_n so_o far_o reach_v the_o goodness_n of_o god_n in_o forgive_a sin_n as_o there_o be_v no_o sin_n except_o that_o only_o which_o be_v here_o except_v the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o come_v within_o the_o compass_n thereof_o all_o sin_n as_o saint_n mark_n have_v record_v christ_n speech_n all_o manner_n of_o sin_n as_o s._n matthew_n have_v record_v it_o shall_v be_v forgive_v not_o as_o if_o in_o the_o issue_n and_o event_n every_o sin_n shall_v indeed_o be_v pardon_v for_o then_o few_o man_n shall_v be_v condemn_v which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o curret_fw-la of_o the_o scripture_n that_o say_v few_o shall_v be_v save_v but_o because_o every_o sin_n be_v pardonable_a 14._o the_o point_n then_o here_o to_o be_v note_v be_v that_o except_o before_o except_v no_o sin_n in_o the_o nature_n thereof_o be_v irremissible_a original_a corruption_n and_o actual_a transgression_n whether_o few_o or_o many_o light_n or_o heinous_a new_o breed_v or_o old_a and_o inveterate_a only_o once_o or_o oft_o commit_v on_o ignorance_n or_o against_o knowledge_n voluntary_o or_o by_o force_n of_o infirmity_n or_o presumption_n against_o god_n or_o man_n without_o a_o man_n body_n or_o against_o his_o own_o body_n in_o secret_a or_o open_o by_o omit_v or_o slight_o perform_v that_o which_o be_v good_a all_o may_v be_v pardon_v for_o a_o particular_a proof_n hereof_o take_v the_o example_n of_o manasseh_n who_o i_o think_v go_v the_o further_a in_o sin_n that_o ever_o any_o do_v since_o adam_n time_n and_o receive_v pardon_n of_o his_o original_a corruption_n no_o question_n can_v be_v make_v that_o his_o actual_a transgression_n be_v many_o &_o those_o most_o heinous_a bloody_a cry_v sin_n
likewise_o truth_n in_o all_o these_o do_v very_o much_o strengthen_v and_o uphold_v a_o man_n in_o time_n of_o trial_n and_o keep_v he_o from_o faint_v 5._o this_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o job_n courage_n and_o constancy_n 3._o this_o add_v a_o edge_n to_o hezek●ahs_n prayer_n 1._o this_o make_v david_n bold_a to_o refer_v himself_o to_o god_n trial_n &_o examination_n 4._o this_o uphold_v paul_n against_o all_o that_o can_v be_v lay_v against_o he_o §._o 5._o of_o get_v truth_n point_n 3_o the_o account_n which_o we_o be_v to_o make_v of_o this_o spiritual_a belt_n be_v declare_v by_o expound_v solomon_n truth_n who_o exhort_v to_o buy_v the_o truth_n and_o not_o sell_v it_o this_o advice_n concern_v two_o sort_n of_o man_n 1._o such_o as_o have_v it_o not_o they_o must_v labour_v to_o get_v it_o 2._o such_o as_o have_v it_o they_o must_v hold_v it_o fast_o that_o this_o direction_n may_v be_v the_o better_o apply_v we_o be_v well_o to_o search_v whether_o we_o have_v this_o girdle_n of_o verity_n or_o no._n fit_o may_v i_o apply_v that_o to_o truth_n which_o 5._o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o faith_n examine_v yourselves_o whether_o you_o have_v truth_n prove_v yourselves_o there_o be_v no_o grace_n which_o make_v a_o more_o sensible_a difference_n betwixt_o the_o child_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o devil_n than_o truth_n in_o this_o examination_n we_o must_v proceed_v in_o order_n §._o 6._o how_o trial_n of_o truth_n may_v be_v make_v 1._o trial_n be_v to_o be_v make_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o our_o judgement_n judgement_n whether_o the_o religion_n which_o we_o profess_v and_o all_o the_o principle_n thereof_o be_v assure_o sound_a and_o true_a to_o this_o tend_v 21_o that_o exhortation_n of_o saint_n paul_n try_v all_o thing_n and_o 1._o that_o of_o saint_n john_n try_v the_o spirit_n for_o this_o end_n the_o direction_n give_v by_o christ_n 39_o search_v the_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v and_o follow_v 11._o as_o it_o be_v by_o the_o man_n of_o berea_n for_o the_o scripture_n be_v 18._o the_o word_n of_o truth_n and_o 16._o the_o voice_n of_o god_n the_o high_a and_o chief_a judge_n a_o most_o perfect_a sufficient_a impartial_a judge_n they_o who_o make_v any_o other_o judge_n may_v soon_o be_v deceive_v here_o see_v what_o wrong_v popish_a guide_n do_v to_o their_o follower_n in_o keep_v from_o they_o this_o touchstone_n of_o truth_n see_v what_o idiot_n they_o be_v who_o think_v it_o sufficient_a to_o believe_v as_o the_o church_n do_v such_o be_v they_o among_o we_o who_o only_a ground_n of_o faith_n be_v the_o common_a receive_a doctrine_n be_v it_o true_a or_o false_a no_o marvel_v they_o be_v soon_o shake_v and_o remove_v they_o want_v this_o girdle_n of_o truth_n which_o shall_v strengthen_v they_o 2_o if_o we_o find_v truth_n seat_v in_o our_o understanding_n heart_n then_o be_v we_o further_o to_o observe_v whether_o like_o the_o ointment_n pour_v on_o aaron_n head_n 3._o and_o the_o dew_n that_o fall_v on_o the_o mountain_n of_o zion_n it_o descend_v from_o the_o head_n to_o the_o heart_n whether_o the_o heart_n be_v upright_o before_o god_n or_o no._n it_o appear_v that_o david_n thorough_o search_v his_o heart_n for_o the_o truth_n thereof_o 1._o or_o else_o dare_v he_o not_o with_o such_o boldness_n and_o confidence_n have_v refer_v it_o to_o god_n trial_n 9_o the_o like_a i_o may_v instance_n in_o job_n hezechiah_n paul_n and_o many_o other_o great_a need_n there_o be_v of_o through_o try_v the_o heart_n for_o it_o be_v deceitful_a above_o all_o thing_n and_o that_o not_o only_o to_o other_o who_o can_v discern_v the_o secret_n thereof_o but_o also_o to_o man_n themselves_o if_o at_o least_o they_o dive_v not_o into_o the_o bottom_n of_o it_o some_o be_v such_o gross_a hypocrite_n that_o they_o can_v but_o in_o their_o heart_n condemn_v themselves_o as_o 9_o ananias_n and_o saphira_n other_o so_o simple_a as_o they_o beguile_v themselves_o 33._o like_o peter_n and_o the_o other_o disciple_n in_o all_o age_n many_o have_v think_v better_o of_o the_o integrity_n of_o their_o heart_n then_o by_o proof_n and_o event_n it_o have_v fall_v out_o to_o be_v the_o best_a trial_n of_o our_o heart_n will_v be_v by_o our_o disposition_n when_o we_o be_v alone_o or_o when_o we_o can_v conceal_v our_o thought_n and_o cogitation_n from_o all_o man_n yea_o even_o from_o the_o very_a suspicion_n and_o conjecture_n of_o man_n if_o then_o they_o be_v upright_o and_o therefore_o upright_o because_o we_o desire_v to_o approve_v ourselves_o to_o god_n 9_o as_o joseph_n then_o may_v we_o be_v assure_v there_o be_v truth_n in_o they_o 3_o from_o the_o heart_n which_o be_v a_o fountain_n action_n we_o be_v to_o proceed_v to_o the_o stream_n thereof_o our_o speech_n and_o action_n and_o search_v whether_o from_o this_o clear_a spring_n there_o flow_v forth_o clear_a water_n and_o so_o see_v what_o correspondency_n there_o be_v betwixt_o they_o now_o here_o we_o be_v not_o only_o to_o observe_v whether_o our_o speech_n do_v agree_v with_o our_o knowledge_n of_o the_o thing_n we_o utter_v and_o with_o evidence_n of_o the_o thing_n itself_o or_o whether_o our_o action_n be_v plain_a or_o fraudulent_a and_o deceitful_a but_o also_o whether_o that_o true_a and_o good_a communication_n which_o we_o utter_v and_o those_o true_a and_o honest_a action_n which_o we_o perform_v do_v come_v 45._o from_o the_o good_a treasure_n of_o a_o true_a heart_n for_o our_o help_n in_o this_o trial_n note_v these_o few_o direction_n §._o 7._o direction_n for_o trial_n of_o truth_n in_o speech_n and_o action_n 1._o what_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o truth_n in_o our_o word_n and_o action_n truth_n what_o move_v we_o thereunto_o whether_o popular_a applause_n 5._o as_o the_o sribe_n and_o pharisee_n who_o do_v all_o to_o be_v see_v of_o man_n 43._o for_o they_o love_v the_o praise_n of_o man_n more_o than_o of_o god_n or_o credit_n and_o estimation_n as_o 30_o saul_n or_o profit_n as_o 23._o the_o schechemite_n or_o respect_v to_o some_o man_n as_o 17._o joash_n and_o his_o people_n or_o desire_v of_o quiet_a and_o avoid_v trouble_n as_o 17._o they_o which_o become_v jew_n in_o mordecay_n time_n or_o company_n and_o example_n of_o other_o as_o 1._o ananias_n and_o saphira_n or_o intent_n to_o work_v some_o mischief_n as_o 9_o jezabel_n and_o 6._o ishmael_n these_o and_o such_o other_o by-respect_n be_v the_o ground_n and_o cause_n of_o our_o action_n do_v plain_o argue_v that_o there_o be_v no_o sound_a truth_n in_o they_o 2_o what_o be_v the_o extent_n of_o that_o truth_n we_o make_v show_v of_o truth_n whether_o it_o be_v in_o all_o thing_n 18._o this_o be_v the_o proof_n of_o the_o apostle_n good_a conscience_n for_o truth_n be_v a_o leven_n 6._o which_o season_v the_o whole_a lump_n so_o as_o they_o which_o at_o sometime_o and_o in_o some_o thing_n be_v watchful_a over_o their_o word_n and_o action_n but_o careless_a at_o other_o time_n in_o other_o thing_n want_v this_o leven_n of_o truth_n as_o 20._o herod_n 3_o what_o the_o thing_n be_v wherein_o we_o be_v most_o strictt_a truth_n whether_o they_o be_v matter_n of_o great_a weight_n and_o moment_n they_o who_o pretend_v much_o truth_n in_o small_a and_o light_a matter_n and_o be_v careless_a and_o dissolute_a in_o great_a and_o weighty_a matter_n have_v no_o sound_a truth_n in_o they_o 23._o such_o be_v the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n 4_o what_o order_n we_o observe_v truth_n whether_o first_o we_o begin_v with_o ourselves_o and_o look_v to_o our_o own_o speech_n and_o action_n 4._o many_o will_v be_v more_o forward_o and_o zealous_a in_o stir_v up_o other_o to_o all_o manner_n of_o truth_n than_o themselves_o yea_o they_o will_v check_v other_o for_o fail_v in_o such_o thing_n wherein_o themselves_o be_v most_o faulty_a sure_o there_o be_v no_o sound_a truth_n in_o such_o 3._o christ_n make_v this_o a_o note_n of_o hypocrisy_n §._o 8._o of_o buy_v truth_n thus_o be_v we_o to_o search_v ourselves_o throughout_o and_o if_o upon_o this_o search_n we_o can_v find_v that_o we_o have_v this_o girdle_n of_o verity_n than_o we_o must_v observe_v the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o wiseman_n advice_n truth_n buy_v the_o truth_n that_o be_v use_v all_o the_o mean_n which_o possible_o we_o can_v for_o attain_v unto_o and_o possess_v it_o yea_o though_o it_o be_v with_o a_o depart_n from_o and_o forsake_v of_o many_o thing_n which_o seem_v profitable_a and_o pleasant_a unto_o we_o because_o they_o and_o truth_n can_v not_o well_o stand_v together_o the_o metaphor_n of_o buy_v imply_v a_o let_v go_v of_o some_o thing_n for_o the_o attain_n of_o other_o thing_n excellentlie_o be_v this_o set_v forth_o unto_o we_o by_o two_o 45._o parable_n which_o christ_n utter_v one_o of_o a_o man_n
that_o buy_v a_o treasure_n and_o another_o of_o a_o merchant_n that_o buy_v a_o pearl_n truth_n be_v a_o rich_a treasure_n and_o a_o precious_a pearl_n if_o the_o worth_n of_o it_o and_o the_o need_n which_o we_o have_v of_o it_o be_v well_o know_v i_o doubt_v not_o but_o easy_o we_o shall_v be_v persuade_v to_o part_v with_o much_o for_o the_o get_n of_o it_o gal._n so_o excellent_a it_o be_v that_o for_o itself_o it_o be_v to_o be_v love_v §._o 9_o motive_n to_o buy_v truth_n i_o will_v therefore_o first_o lie_v down_o some_o motive_n to_o stir_v up_o in_o we_o a_o desire_n of_o truth_n and_o then_o some_o direction_n to_o instruct_v we_o how_o to_o get_v it_o for_o the_o first_o note_v the_o excellency_n 2._o the_o necessity_n 3._o the_o benefit_n of_o truth_n 1_o excellent_a must_v that_o needs_o be_v truth_n which_o make_v we_o like_a to_o god_n but_o nothing_o can_v make_v we_o more_o like_a to_o he_o then_o truth_n for_o he_o be_v the_o 5_o lord_n god_n of_o truth_n 6._o his_o son_n be_v truth_n 17_o his_o holy_a spirit_n the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n 18._o his_o word_n the_o word_n of_o truth_n 9_o his_o promise_n commandment_n judgement_n way_n work_n all_o truth_n herein_o do_v the_o glorious_a angel_n and_o saint_n resemble_v god_n 10._o who_o to_o imitate_v be_v a_o excellent_a thing_n 4._o most_o contrary_a be_v the_o devil_n and_o all_o that_o bear_v his_o image_n beside_o truth_n be_v a_o kind_n of_o perfection_n in_o all_o christian_a grace_n yea_o 〈◊〉_d the_o great_a perfection_n that_o we_o can_v attain_v unto_o in_o this_o life_n 1._o one_o and_o the_o same_o word_n in_o hebrew_n signify_v both_o integrity_n or_o uprightness_n and_o perfection_n so_o as_o some_o translate_v it_o upright_o some_o perfect_a in_o regard_n of_o this_o quality_n 1._o we_o may_v appeal_v to_o god_n judgement_n but_o not_o in_o any_o other_o kind_n of_o perfection_n 3._o whether_o of_o degree_n part_n measure_n or_o the_o like_a so_o that_o in_o this_o respect_n it_o have_v a_o excellency_n above_o all_o other_o grace_n 2_o so_o needful_a it_o be_v and_o necessary_a truth_n as_o without_o it_o no_o other_o grace_n can_v be_v of_o any_o use_n i'faith_o hope_n love_n &_o all_o other_o grace_n be_v as_o corrupt_v and_o putrify_a meat_n without_o it_o therefore_o the_o scripture_n commend_v 5._o faith_n unfeigned_a 9_o love_n without_o dissimulation_n 17._o wisdom_n without_o hypocrisy_n etc._n etc._n yea_o also_o lip_n unfeigned_a innocent_a hand_n etc._n etc._n no_o knowledge_n 14._o no_o righteousness_n no_o good_a thing_n can_v stand_v a_o hypocrite_n in_o any_o steed_n what_o good_a get_v saul_n judas_n ananias_n and_o saphira_n simon_n magus_n and_o such_o other_o hypocrite_n 2._o by_o all_o those_o seem_a excellent_a gift_n which_o they_o make_v show_v of_o all_o they_o do_v be_v odious_a before_o god_n therefore_o notwithstanding_o the_o pharisee_n pray_v oft_o give_v much_o alm_n fast_v oft_o due_o pay_v their_o tithe_n with_o the_o like_a yet_o christ_n denounce_v many_o woe_n against_o they_o mat._n 23._o hypocrite_n receive_v no_o reward_n of_o god_n the_o searcher_n of_o heart_n but_o the_o punishment_n of_o deceit_n 3_o such_o be_v the_o benefit_n of_o truth_n truth_n that_o the_o least_o measure_n of_o grace_n season_v with_o it_o be_v acceptable_a to_o god_n and_o in_o that_o respect_n very_o profitable_a to_o us._n it_o be_v note_v of_o those_o which_o in_o hezechias_n time_n come_v out_o of_o ephraim_n and_o other_o tribe_n of_o israel_n unto_o jerusalem_n to_o keep_v the_o passeover_n 20._o that_o they_o have_v not_o clenge_v themselves_o according_a to_o the_o law_n whereby_o they_o provoke_v the_o lord_n to_o inflict_v some_o judgement_n upon_o they_o but_o hezekiah_n put_v the_o lord_n in_o mind_n how_o they_o come_v with_o their_o whole_a heart_n to_o seek_v the_o god_n of_o their_o father_n the_o lord_n heal_v they_o well_o might_n 1._o david_n pronounce_v the_o upright_o bless_v for_o as_o 6._o god_n love_v truth_n so_o 20._o the_o upright_o be_v his_o delight_n and_o 11._o he_o have_v promise_v to_o withhold_v no_o good_a thing_n from_o they_o thus_o we_o see_v what_o good_a reason_n we_o have_v to_o buy_v truth_n observe_v now_o how_o it_o may_v be_v get_v §_o 10._o mean_v to_o get_v truth_n for_o truth_n of_o judgement_n get_v we_o must_v resort_v to_o the_o place_n where_o it_o may_v be_v have_v that_o be_v the_o true_a church_n 15._o the_o pilla_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n in_o it_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o truth_n the_o holy_a scripture_n in_o it_o flow_v forth_o the_o stream_n of_o truth_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n be_v thou_o one_o of_o the_o member_n of_o the_o true_a church_n so_o shall_v thou_o have_v a_o right_a thereunto_o search_v the_o scripture_n frequent_a the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n so_o shall_v thou_o find_v truth_n rather_o than_o go_v without_o it_o let_v go_v honour_n wealth_n pleasure_n ease_n and_o all_o thy_o natural_a and_o carnal_a lust_n let_v go_v all_o bawl_v have_v sure_o a_o good_a mind_n to_o buy_v the_o truth_n for_o 8._o he_o count_v all_o thing_n loss_n for_o the_o excellent_a knowledge_n of_o christ_n for_o truth_n in_o heart_n get_v speech_n and_o carriage_n remember_v that_o thou_o stand_v always_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n and_o that_o thou_o have_v to_o do_v with_o he_o whether_o thou_o be_v alone_o or_o in_o company_n do_v any_o duty_n that_o appertain_v to_o god_n or_o man_n and_o in_o respect_n hereof_o let_v thy_o care_n be_v to_o approve_v thyself_o to_o god_n thus_o shall_v thou_o get_v truth_n for_o mark_v the_o charge_n which_o god_n himself_o give_v to_o abraham_n 1._o walk_v before_o i_o and_o be_v upright_o the_o former_a part_n of_o this_o charge_n be_v a_o cause_n of_o the_o latter_a the_o latter_a a_o fruit_n and_o evidence_n of_o the_o former_a 9_o joseph_n have_v well_o acquaint_v himself_o with_o god_n presence_n which_o make_v he_o so_o honest_a and_o upright_o this_o be_v it_o which_o make_v man_n such_o dissembler_n in_o their_o word_n and_o action_n that_o either_o they_o know_v not_o god_n presence_n in_o every_o place_n or_o believe_v it_o not_o or_o think_v not_o of_o it_o or_o regard_v it_o not_o man_n presence_n make_v many_o be_v faithful_a just_a honest_a etc._n etc._n sure_o god_n presence_n must_v needs_o work_v much_o more_o if_o it_o be_v due_o weigh_v or_o else_o man_n have_v atheistical_a heart_n let_v we_o set_v god_n always_o before_o we_o and_o depart_v with_o any_o thing_n rather_o than_o offend_v he_o and_o thus_o shall_v we_o come_v to_o be_v upright_o §._o 11._o of_o keep_v truth_n after_o that_o truth_n be_v get_v truth_n our_o next_o care_n must_v be_v fast_o to_o hold_v it_o and_o thereby_o manifest_a that_o great_a account_n which_o we_o make_v of_o it_o sell_v it_o not_o say_v the_o wise_a man_n by_o no_o mean_n upon_o any_o condition_n for_o any_o respect_n let_v it_o go_v for_o than_o etc._n it_o have_v be_v better_a for_o we_o never_o to_o have_v have_v it_o all_o the_o good_a we_o reap_v by_o verity_n and_o integrity_n after_o it_o be_v lose_v be_v this_o that_o another_o day_n it_o will_v rise_v up_o in_o judgement_n and_o be_v a_o heavy_a witness_n against_o us._n some_o man_n make_v such_o account_n of_o some_o jewel_n they_o have_v that_o no_o preferment_n no_o favour_n no_o wealth_n no_o office_n nothing_o can_v purchase_v they_o and_o yet_o it_o may_v be_v that_o their_o jewel_n be_v not_o worth_a the_o price_n which_o be_v offer_v for_o they_o shall_v not_o we_o much_o more_o esteem_n of_o truth_n for_o which_o no_o sufficient_a price_n can_v be_v give_v the_o holy_a confessor_n and_o martyr_n in_o all_o age_n have_v well_o know_v the_o value_n of_o this_o jewel_n and_o in_o that_o respect_n prefer_v it_o before_o their_o live_n and_o life_n they_o will_v not_o let_v go_v truth_n of_o doctrine_n 9_o joseph_n will_v not_o let_v go_v truth_n of_o heart_n and_o action_n for_o love_n nor_o fear_n §._o 12._o how_o truth_n of_o doctrine_n be_v assault_v this_o latter_a point_n of_o fastholding_a and_o safe_a keep_v truth_n us._n be_v the_o rather_o to_o be_v regard_v because_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o instrument_n not_o ignorant_a that_o if_o this_o girdle_n be_v want_v all_o other_o piece_n of_o armour_n will_v stand_v we_o in_o no_o stead_n have_v be_v in_o all_o former_a age_n and_o still_o be_v busy_a to_o get_v it_o away_o from_o we_o sometime_o by_o fair_a enticement_n &_o allurement_n to_o draw_v we_o from_o truth_n of_o doctrine_n on_o the_o one_o side_n be_v bring_v many_o plausible_a argument_n agreeable_a to_o the_o natural_a humour_n and_o reason_n of_o man_n such_o be_v most_o of_o theargument_n which_o papist_n use_v on_o the_o
for_o those_o which_o have_v fall_v they_o never_o have_v a_o grain_n of_o truth_n in_o their_o heart_n all_o the_o show_n they_o make_v be_v only_o a_o show_n 21._o they_o fall_v because_o they_o have_v no_o truth_n in_o they_o have_v they_o be_v upright_o 19_o they_o will_v have_v continue_v so_o 37._o for_o mark_v the_o up_o right_a man_n the_o end_n of_o that_o man_n be_v peace_n §._o 18._o of_o the_o pretend_a judgement_n on_o the_o upright_o obiesct_n 3._o fvrth_o he_o infer_v that_o the_o upright_a be_v plague_v as_o much_o if_o not_o more_o than_o other_o how_o then_o can_v their_o uprightness_n be_v please_v to_o god_n answ_n wrath_n corection_n be_v not_o taken_v of_o god_n wrath_n 6._o but_o of_o his_o love_n when_o they_o be_v lay_v upon_o his_o child_n the_o upright_o have_v many_o judgement_n inflict_v on_o they_o for_o proof_n of_o their_o uprightness_n as_o 12._o job_n and_o therefore_o for_o their_o good_a and_o for_o their_o glory_n yea_o also_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n §._o 19_o of_o other_o opinion_n concern_v a_o man_n sincerity_n object_n eside_v he_o labour_v to_o persuade_v man_n that_o they_o deceive_v themselves_o in_o think_v they_o have_v truth_n of_o heart_n when_o they_o have_v none_o because_o other_o man_n judge_v not_o so_o well_o of_o they_o as_o they_o themselves_o answ_n heart_n no_o other_o man_n can_v so_o well_o discern_v the_o truth_n of_o heart_n as_o a_o man_n own_o self_n 11._o for_o what_o man_n know_v the_o thing_n of_o a_o man_n save_o the_o spirit_n of_o a_o man_n which_o be_v in_o he_o as_o other_o man_n may_v judge_v a_o hypocrite_n to_o be_v upright_o when_o the_o hypocrite_n in_o his_o own_o conscience_n know_v himself_o to_o be_v so_o so_o they_o may_v judge_v a_o upright_a man_n to_o be_v a_o hypocrite_n but_o another_o man_n judgement_n can_v make_v the_o hypocrite_n to_o be_v upright_o why_o then_o shall_v it_o make_v a_o upright_a man_n a_o hypocrite_n the_o hypocrite_n conscience_n condemn_v he_o though_o all_o the_o world_n acquit_v he_o and_o the_o upright_a man_n conscience_n will_v uphold_v he_o as_o job_n do_v though_o all_o the_o world_n condemn_v he_o 11._o beleve_v if_o our_o heart_n condemn_v we_o not_o then_o have_v we_o boldness_n towards_o god_n for_o 4._o every_o one_o stand_v or_o fall_v to_o his_o own_o master_n §._o 20._o pretend_a hindrance_n of_o plain-dealing_a 3_o against_o truth_n in_o word_n and_o deed_n be_v object_v i_o know_v not_o what_o hindrance_n and_o inconvenience_n object_n 1._o truth_n be_v a_o hindrance_n in_o that_o it_o keep_v man_n from_o much_o gain_n for_o some_o say_v there_o be_v no_o live_n without_o lie_v and_o use_v the_o common_a secret_n of_o trade_n answ_n gain_n it_o be_v much_o better_a to_o want_v gain_n then_o to_o get_v it_o by_o any_o deceit_n of_o word_n or_o deed_n 17._o the_o bread_n of_o deceit_n be_v sweet_a to_o a_o man_n but_o afterward_o his_o mouth_n shall_v be_v fill_v with_o gravel_n 22._o a_o curse_n remain_v upon_o that_o gain_n which_o be_v deceitful_o get_v but_o this_o pretext_n of_o hindrance_n be_v a_o mere_a pretext_n gain_n utter_o false_a for_o there_o be_v not_o a_o more_o sure_a mean_n of_o gain_n then_o truth_n in_o word_n and_o deed_n and_o that_o in_o a_o double_a respect_n 1._o 29._o because_o most_o man_n desire_v to_o deal_v with_o such_o so_o as_o they_o shall_v have_v the_o best_a custom_n no_o man_n be_v willing_a to_o be_v deceive_v but_o all_o desire_n that_o other_o shall_v true_o and_o plain_o deal_v with_o they_o howsoever_o they_o deal_v with_o other_o 2_o because_o etc._n god_n blessing_n which_o bring_v gain_v and_o 22._o make_v rich_a go_v with_o the_o upright_o §._o 21._o pretend_a inconvenience_n of_o plain_a deal_n object_n 2._o the_o inconvenience_n be_v that_o 4._o the_o upright_o be_v laugh_v to_o scorn_v they_o be_v a_o byword_n in_o every_o man_n mouth_n yea_o they_o be_v tread_v under_o every_o one_o foot_n d_o they_o be_v make_v a_o prey_n answ_n all_o these_o we_o may_v put_v as_o flower_n into_o our_o garland_n of_o glory_n and_o rejoice_v in_o they_o as_o we_o hear_v of_o persecution_n for_o 22._o christ_n make_v they_o kind_n of_o persecution_n thus_o we_o see_v that_o truth_n notwithstanding_o all_o that_o can_v be_v object_v against_o it_o pauli_n be_v worth_a the_o keep_n all_o the_o cavil_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o instrument_n be_v of_o no_o force_n to_o make_v we_o little_a regard_n this_o girdle_n of_o verity_n or_o light_o to_o let_v it_o go_v yea_o such_o be_v the_o virtue_n of_o truth_n that_o like_o the_o palm_n tree_n the_o more_o it_o be_v press_v down_o the_o more_o it_o grow_v §._o 22._o of_o hold_v truth_n more_o steadfast_o for_o opposition_n let_v we_o do_v with_o this_o and_o other_o piece_n of_o spiritual_a armour_n as_o man_n do_v with_o their_o cloak_n which_o cover_v their_o body_n if_o the_o wind_n blow_v hard_a against_o they_o they_o will_v so_o much_o the_o fast_o and_o close_o hold_v their_o cloak_n even_o so_o the_o more_o satan_n strive_v to_o deprive_v we_o of_o our_o spiritual_a robe_n the_o more_o careful_a and_o steadfast_a aught_o we_o to_o be_v in_o keep_v they_o in_o particular_a for_o this_o girdle_n of_o verity_n it_o be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o high_o to_o be_v account_v of_o by_o we_o who_o be_v the_o lord_n faithful_a soldier_n by_o how_o much_o the_o less_o reckon_v be_v make_v thereof_o by_o the_o great_a number_n of_o people_n in_o these_o day_n all_o be_v for_o show_v have_v little_a or_o nothing_o in_o truth_n as_o building_n ware_n apparel_n and_o the_o like_a be_v all_o of_o the_o slight_a stuff_n but_o with_o the_o fair_a gloss_n and_o show_n that_o may_v be_v so_o our_o religion_n and_o all_o thing_n else_o that_o religion_n which_o outward_o be_v most_o glorious_a and_o pompous_a be_v of_o most_o embrace_v as_o be_v the_o best_a whereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o popery_n have_v get_v such_o like_n of_o many_o who_o almost_o be_v careful_a to_o set_v himself_o always_o in_o god_n presence_n and_o as_o 22_o enoch_n to_o walk_v with_o he_o many_o who_o seem_v very_o devout_a at_o church_n seldom_o or_o never_o have_v any_o religious_a exercise_n at_o home_n in_o their_o family_n much_o less_o in_o their_o closert_n before_o god_n for_o their_o word_n they_o shall_v be_v as_o fair_a as_o may_v be_v before_o a_o man_n face_n but_o full_a of_o falsehood_n yea_o most_o bitter_a and_o virulent_a behind_o a_o man_n back_n and_o for_o action_n all_o be_v to_o blear_v the_o purblind_a eye_n of_o man_n all_o the_o care_n be_v to_o keep_v credit_n with_o man_n wherein_o while_o man_n think_v to_o deceive_v other_o they_o do_v most_o of_o all_o deceive_v themselves_o and_o their_o own_o poor_a soul_n which_o shall_v another_o day_n answer_v for_o this_o deceit_n the_o four_o part_n breastplate_n of_o righteousness_n ephes_n 6._o 14._o and_o have_v on_o the_o breastplate_n of_o righteousness_n §._o 1._o of_o righteousness_n m_o general_n the_o second_o piece_n of_o our_o spiritual_a armour_n be_v righteousness_n 118._o compare_v to_o a_o breastplate_n fit_o be_v this_o infer_v upon_o the_o former_a for_o truth_n be_v the_o mother_n of_o righteousness_n they_o can_v be_v sever_v in_o handle_v this_o point_n i_o will_v show_v first_o what_o righteousness_n be_v second_o how_o fit_o it_o be_v compare_v to_o a_o breastplate_n three_o how_o this_o breastplate_n be_v put_v and_o keep_v on_o four_o what_o be_v the_o benefit_n of_o it_o five_o what_o be_v the_o wile_n of_o the_o devil_n to_o keep_v we_o from_o it_o point_n 1_o righteousness_n be_v our_o conformity_n unto_o god_n law_n be_v a_o holy_a quality_n wrought_v in_o we_o by_o god_n spirit_n whereby_o we_o endeavour_v to_o square_v and_o frame_v all_o our_o thought_n word_n and_o action_n unto_o the_o righteous_a rule_n of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n it_o be_v that_o which_o we_o common_o call_v 1._o justice_n a_o virtue_n whereby_o be_v give_v to_o every_o one_o their_o due_a whether_o it_o be_v to_o god_n or_o man_n righteousness_n be_v often_o restrain_v to_o that_o part_n of_o justice_n which_o respect_v man_n and_o so_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o the_o second_o table_n but_o then_o either_o some_o other_o word_n be_v join_v with_o it_o which_o have_v reference_n to_o god_n as_o holiness_n luke_n 1._o 75_o or_o else_o some_o circumstance_n of_o the_o place_n restrain_v it_o to_o man_n as_o deut._n 24._o 13._o but_o otherwise_o when_o there_o be_v no_o other_o word_n or_o circumstance_n which_o restrain_v it_o than_o it_o extend_v itself_o to_o the_o whole_a law_n as_o here_o the_o law_n of_o god_n be_v a_o right_a and_o perfect_a rule_n and_o declare_v what_o be_v due_a
employ_v that_o ability_n believe_v whatsoever_o it_o be_v that_o he_o have_v by_o nature_n or_o special_a gift_n because_o god_n in_o wisdom_n have_v appoint_v the_o preach_n of_o his_o word_n to_o be_v the_o mean_n of_o work_a faith_n man_n must_v diligent_o use_v that_o mean_n and_o constant_o attend_v thereupon_o not_o give_v over_o till_o he_o find_v the_o bless_a work_n of_o faith_n wrought_v in_o he_o a_o natural_a man_n may_v go_v to_o church_n and_o with_o his_o outward_a ear_n hearken_v to_o the_o word_n and_o wait_v upon_o it_o and_o because_o prayer_n be_v a_o mean_n to_o move_v god_n to_o give_v his_o spirit_n and_o thereby_o to_o open_a man_n heart_n to_o receive_v the_o word_n into_o it_o and_o to_o make_v his_o word_n powerful_a and_o effectual_a he_o must_v also_o as_o well_o as_o he_o can_v pray_v to_o god_n for_o his_o spirit_n and_o for_o his_o blessing_n on_o his_o word_n for_o a_o natural_a man_n may_v pray_v though_o not_o in_o faith_n and_o god_n do_v oft_o hear_v the_o desire_n of_o such_o as_o he_o hear_v 3._o the_o young_a raven_n when_o they_o cry_v for_o want_v of_o their_o meat_n the_o other_o 1._o that_o we_o resist_v not_o any_o motion_n of_o god_n spirit_n like_o the_o rebellious_a jew_n nor_o put_v off_o from_o we_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o if_o they_o belong_v not_o unto_o we_o and_o think_v ourselves_o unworthy_a of_o eternal_a life_n §._o 25._o of_o god_n offering_n christ_n for_o motive_n to_o make_v a_o man_n bold_a to_o apply_v unto_o himself_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n believe_v there_o be_v none_o at_o all_o in_o himself_o he_o must_v clean_o go_v out_o of_o himself_o and_o due_o weigh_v these_o three_o point_n 1_o the_o author_n of_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n 2_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n 3_o the_o extent_n of_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o the_o first_o gospel_n it_o be_v god_n that_o make_v the_o promise_n he_o it_o be_v that_o make_v offer_v of_o christ_n jesus_n and_o in_o he_o of_o all_o thing_n belong_v to_o life_n and_o happiness_n 16._o god_n so_o love_v the_o world_n that_o he_o give_v his_o only_a beget_v son_n etc._n etc._n with_o what_o face_n may_v the_o creature_n refuse_v to_o receive_v that_o which_o his_o creator_n offer_v now_o that_o we_o may_v not_o doubt_v but_o be_v assure_v that_o he_o will_v make_v his_o word_n good_a we_o be_v especial_o to_o consider_v two_o property_n of_o god_n 1._o his_o power_n 2._o his_o truth_n the_o one_o show_v that_o he_o be_v able_a to_o do_v what_o he_o have_v promise_v the_o other_o that_o he_o will_v not_o fail_v to_o do_v it_o §._o 26._o of_o god_n power_n to_o make_v his_o offer_n good_a no_o question_n can_v just_o be_v make_v of_o god_n almighty_a power_n 1_o for_o the_o scripture_n express_o say_v with_o god_n shall_v nothing_o be_v impossible_a luk._n 1._o 37._o all_o thing_n be_v possible_a to_o he_o mar._n 10._o 27._o which_o be_v to_o be_v note_v against_o our_o deadness_n dulness_n and_o untowardness_n to_o believe_v in_o regard_n whereof_o we_o may_v think_v that_o a_o man_n natural_o dead_a may_v as_o easy_o eat_v and_o drink_v as_o we_o believe_v but_o when_o we_o consider_v the_o power_n of_o god_n might_n how_o 9_o he_o be_v able_a of_o stone_n to_o raise_v up_o child_n unto_o abraham_n we_o may_v well_o think_v 26._o that_o he_o be_v able_a to_o take_v away_o our_o stony_a heart_n and_o give_v we_o a_o heart_n of_o flesh_n abraham_n look_v to_o god_n power_n and_o thereby_o be_v move_v to_o believe_v that_o god_n will_v perform_v his_o promise_n though_o i_o saacke_o in_o who_o the_o promise_n be_v make_v be_v to_o be_v sacrifice_v 11._o he_o do_v not_o doubt_v of_o the_o promise_n be_v full_o assure_v that_o he_o which_o have_v promise_v be_v also_o able_a to_o do_v it_o this_o motive_n take_v from_o god_n almighty_a power_n be_v in_o scripture_n oft_o use_v to_o stir_v up_o man_n &_o woman_n to_o believe_v the_o promise_n of_o god_n it_o be_v use_v to_o 14._o sarah_n to_o the_o 37._o virgin_n mary_n to_o 27._o jeremiah_n &_o to_o the_o 27._o disciple_n of_o christ_n and_o it_o be_v the_o rather_o to_o be_v think_v of_o because_o we_o be_v very_o prone_a by_o nature_n to_o make_v doubt_n thereof_o for_o albeit_o in_o our_o judgement_n we_o be_v well_o persuade_v of_o god_n omnipotency_n and_o with_o our_o mouth_n can_v profess_v as_o much_o yet_o when_o we_o be_v in_o great_a strait_n bring_v to_o a_o pinch_n and_o see_v no_o ordinary_a mean_n for_o the_o effect_v the_o thing_n which_o we_o desire_v than_o we_o think_v that_o god_n himself_o be_v not_o able_a to_o do_v it_o like_o 2._o the_o incredulous_a prince_n and_o not_o he_o only_o but_o the_o 20._o unbelieve_a israelite_n also_o though_o they_o have_v be_v long_o nurture_v under_o god_n special_a government_n and_o see_v many_o of_o his_o marvelous_a work_n yea_o 22._o moses_n himself_o be_v subject_a hereunto_o §._o 27._o of_o god_n truth_n in_o make_v good_a his_o offer_n no_o more_o question_n can_v be_v make_v of_o god_n truth_n then_o of_o his_o power_n promise_n for_o he_o be_v 5._o the_o lord_n god_n of_o truth_n 17._o with_o he_o be_v no_o variableness_n nor_o shadow_n of_o turn_v 2._o he_o can_v lie_v 18._o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o he_o shall_v for_o 24._o faithful_a be_v he_o which_o promise_v the_o gospel_n in_o which_o his_o promise_n be_v make_v 〈◊〉_d 13._o the_o word_n of_o truth_n his_o son_n who_o declare_v they_o 14._o 〈◊〉_d faithful_a and_o true_a witness_n his_o spirit_n which_o seal_v they_o up_o 17._o a_o spirit_n of_o truth_n this_o truth_n of_o god_n be_v to_o be_v meditate_a of_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o greatness_n of_o god_n promise_n for_o when_o man_n hear_v of_o christ_n and_o all_o his_o benefit_n offer_v in_o the_o gospel_n he_o will_v be_v ready_a to_o think_v and_o say_v oh_o here_o be_v sweet_a and_o excellent_a promise_n but_o they_o be_v too_o good_a to_o be_v true_a i_o fear_v they_o be_v too_o great_a to_o be_v perform_v but_o if_o that_o man_n remember_v how_o faithful_a and_o true_a god_n be_v that_o make_v they_o it_o will_v make_v he_o think_v again_o and_o say_v though_o they_o be_v much_o great_a yet_o god_n who_o be_v able_a assure_o will_v not_o fail_v to_o perform_v what_o he_o have_v promise_v §._o 28._o of_o god_n free_a offer_n ●_o for_o the_o cause_n whereby_o god_n be_v move_v to_o offer_v christ_n and_o all_o his_o benefit_n man_n it_o be_v his_o own_o goodness_n and_o nothing_o else_o now_o there_o be_v two_o thing_n which_o do_v high_o commend_v god_n goodness_n first_o the_o freeness_n of_o his_o grace_n second_o the_o riches_n of_o his_o mercy_n god_n grace_n be_v every_o way_n so_o free_a free_a that_o the_o goodness_n which_o he_o show_v to_o his_o creature_n be_v altogether_o of_o himself_o &_o from_o himself_o 16._o god_n so_o love_v the_o world_n that_o he_o give_v etc._n etc._n 10._o when_o we_o be_v enemy_n we_o be_v reconcile_v to_o god_n 15._o when_o there_o be_v none_o to_o mediate_v for_o we_o god_n offer_v grace_n and_o give_v his_o son_n to_o be_v a_o mediator_n this_o be_v to_o be_v note_v against_o man_n unworthiness_n for_o he_o be_v ready_a to_o look_v down_o upon_o himself_o and_o say_v ah_o i_o be_o too_o too_o unworthy_a to_o partake_v of_o christ_n what_o can_v there_o be_v in_o i_o to_o move_v god_n to_o beftow_v his_o son_n on_o i_o and_o thus_o keep_v himself_o from_o believe_v but_o if_o we_o consider_v that_o god_n respect_v his_o own_o goodness_n and_o not_o we_o in_o give_v we_o his_o son_n and_o that_o his_o grace_n be_v every_o way_n free_a that_o conceit_n of_o our_o unworthiness_n can_v be_v no_o just_a impediment_n to_o faith_n §._o 29._o of_o the_o riches_n of_o god_n mercy_n as_o for_o the_o riches_n of_o god_n mercy_n abundant_a they_o be_v unutterable_a unconceivable_a i_o may_v well_o cry_v out_o and_o say_v oh_o the_o deepness_n of_o they_o how_o unsearchable_a be_v they_o and_o past_o find_v out_o according_a to_o god_n greatness_n so_o be_v his_o mercy_n it_o be_v infinite_a and_o 4._o reach_v above_o the_o heaven_n so_o as_o god_n may_v well_o be_v say_v 4._o to_o be_v rich_a in_o mercy_n and_o 6._o abundant_a in_o goodness_n this_o be_v to_o be_v note_v against_o the_o multitude_n and_o heinousness_n of_o our_o sin_n which_o because_o they_o be_v innumerable_a and_o infinite_a keep_v many_o man_n from_o believe_v the_o pardon_n of_o they_o but_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o infiniteness_n of_o god_n mercy_n which_o be_v as_o a_o ocean_n sufficient_a to_o swallow_v they_o all_o up_o though_o they_o be_v more_o
christ_n foot_n with_o her_o tear_n and_o of_o other_o be_v record_v but_o the_o grief_n of_o the_o thief_n be_v imply_v both_o by_o reprove_v his_o fellow_n and_o also_o by_o acknowledge_v his_o own_o guiltiness_n rahab_n say_v 11_o that_o their_o heart_n melt_v object_n that_o which_o be_v say_v of_o rahab_n be_v say_v of_o other_o also_o who_o believe_v not_o answ_n though_o the_o same_o affection_n be_v joint_o attribute_v to_o all_o yet_o it_o be_v very_o different_a in_o the_o kind_n manner_n and_o end_v thereof_o the_o heart_n of_o other_o melt_v for_o fear_n of_o a_o temporal_a destruction_n it_o be_v a_o worldly_a sorrow_n but_o she_o a_o godly_a sorrow_n because_o she_o be_v a_o alien_n from_o the_o common_a wealth_n of_o israel_n and_o out_o of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o so_o earnest_o desire_v to_o be_v one_o of_o they_o lydia_n may_v be_v prepare_v before_o she_o hear_v paul_n for_o she_o 14._o accompany_v they_o which_o go_v out_o to_o pray_v and_o she_o worship_v god_n or_o else_o her_o heart_n may_v be_v then_o touch_v when_o she_o hear_v paul_n preach_v the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v of_o 45._o those_o which_o hear_v peter_n when_o he_o preach_v to_o cornelius_n and_o of_o other_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o a_o man_n must_v both_o see_v and_o feel_v his_o wretchedness_n and_o be_v wound_v in_o soul_n for_o it_o before_o faith_n can_v be_v wrought_v in_o he_o yet_o i_o deny_v not_o but_o there_o may_v be_v great_a difference_n in_o the_o manner_n &_o measure_n of_o grieve_v some_o 6_o draw_v water_n and_o pour_v it_o out_o before_o the_o lord_n 38._o their_o heart_n pour_v out_o abundance_n of_o tear_n 29_o other_o tremble_v and_o quake_v again_o with_o horror_n other_o long_o continue_v in_o their_o grief_n other_o be_v so_o deep_o wound_v within_o that_o they_o can_v express_v it_o by_o outward_a tear_n but_o be_v even_o astonish_v as_o with_o a_o wound_n that_o bleed_v inward_o other_o see_v in_o what_o a_o wretched_a and_o curse_a estate_n they_o lie_v and_o be_v grieve_v and_o even_o confound_v that_o they_o can_v grieve_v no_o more_o yet_o it_o please_v god_n after_o he_o have_v show_v to_o some_o their_o woeful_a estate_n through_o sin_n and_o touch_v their_o heart_n therewith_o bring_v they_o thereby_o to_o loathe_v their_o own_o natural_a estate_n to_o despair_v in_o themselves_o and_o to_o condemn_v themselves_o utter_o renounce_v all_o confidence_n in_o themselves_o present_o to_o stir_v up_o their_o heart_n to_o desire_v and_o embrace_v the_o sweet_a promise_n and_o consolation_n of_o the_o gospel_n i'faith_o therefore_o be_v not_o to_o be_v judge_v by_o the_o measure_n but_o by_o the_o truth_n of_o grief_n which_o may_v be_v know_v by_o the_o cause_n and_o fruit_n thereof_o §._o 43._o how_o grief_n which_o work_v faith_n be_v wrought_v for_o the_o cause_n it_o true_a grief_n which_o work_v faith_n arise_v 1_o 37._o from_o the_o word_n of_o god_n whereby_o sin_n and_o god_n wrath_n for_o the_o same_o be_v discover_v object_n the_o etc._n jailor_n be_v humble_v with_o a_o extraordinary_a judgement_n answer_n no_o doubt_n but_o he_o have_v hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n before_o for_o paul_n have_v be_v sometime_o in_o that_o city_n so_o as_o that_o judgement_n be_v but_o as_o a_o hammer_n to_o drive_v into_o his_o heart_n the_o nail_n of_o god_n word_n for_o it_o be_v the_o proper_a use_n of_o god_n judgement_n to_o beat_v down_o the_o hard_a and_o stout_a heart_n of_o man_n and_o so_o to_o make_v he_o sensible_o apprehend_v god_n wrath_n denounce_v in_o his_o word_n against_o sinner_n so_o be_v 12_o manasseh_n bring_v to_o apply_v the_o threaten_n of_o god_n word_n to_o himself_o by_o a_o great_a judgement_n 2_o from_o despair_n of_o all_o help_n in_o ourselves_o or_o any_o other_o creature_n ourselves_o this_o make_v the_o jew_n and_o jailor_n say_v 30_o what_o shall_v we_o do_v so_o long_o as_o man_n retain_v any_o conceit_n of_o help_n in_o himself_o all_o his_o misery_n and_o grief_n for_o it_o will_v never_o bring_v he_o to_o christ_n 3._o displeasure_n from_o our_o wretchedness_n and_o vildness_n by_o reason_n of_o sin_n whereby_o god_n be_v offend_v and_o his_o wrath_n provoke_v as_o well_o as_o from_o our_o cursednesse_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o punishment_n and_o fearful_a issue_n of_o sin_n thus_o be_v the_o prodigal_a child_n grieve_v because_o he_o have_v 18._o sin_v against_o his_o father_n §._o 44._o of_o the_o effect_n which_o that_o grief_n that_o cause_v faith_n bring_v forth_o grief_n thus_o wrought_v bring_v forth_o these_o and_o such_o like_a effect_n grief_n 1_o 19_o shame_n for_o the_o evil_n which_o have_v be_v do_v 2_o a_o true_a and_o thorough_a resolution_n to_o enter_v into_o a_o new_a course_n sure_o they_o which_o come_v to_o john_n and_o say_v 14._o what_o shall_v we_o do_v be_v thus_o mind_v 21._o 3_o a_o renew_n of_o grief_n 13._o so_o oft_o as_o occasion_n be_v offer_v true_a spiritual_a grief_n which_o work_v faith_n be_v never_o clean_o dry_v up_o because_o sin_n the_o cause_n of_o it_o be_v never_o clean_o take_v away_o thus_o the_o grief_n which_o breed_v faith_n continue_v after_o faith_n be_v wrought_v though_o not_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n and_o measure_n for_o before_o faith_n it_o can_v be_v mix_v with_o any_o true_a joy_n and_o sound_a comfort_n as_o it_o may_v be_v after_o faith_n be_v wrought_v many_o who_o have_v no_o better_a than_o a_o temporary_a faith_n be_v at_o first_o much_o grieve_a and_o wound_v in_o conscience_n but_o after_o they_o receive_v some_o comfort_n by_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v so_o jocund_a and_o joyful_a that_o they_o grow_v secure_a again_o and_o never_o after_o let_v grief_n seize_v upon_o they_o no_o though_o they_o fall_v into_o such_o grievous_a sin_n as_o may_v just_o renew_v their_o grief_n they_o put_v off_o all_o with_o this_o that_o once_o they_o grieve_v david_n paul_n and_o many_o other_o faithful_a saint_n of_o god_n be_v otherwise_o affect_v as_o be_v evident_a by_o those_o etc._n many_o grievous_a groan_n sigh_n and_o exclamation_n which_o be_v record_v of_o they_o 24_o §._o 45._o of_o that_o desire_n which_o cause_v faith_n the_o second_o thing_n to_o be_v examine_v in_o the_o disposition_n of_o a_o man_n heart_n for_o the_o proof_n of_o faith_n christ_n be_v the_o desire_n of_o it_o after_o christ_n grief_n at_o our_o misery_n without_o desire_n of_o the_o remedy_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v faith_n that_o it_o cause_v desperation_n that_o true_a desire_n which_o work_v faith_n may_v be_v know_v desire_n 1._o by_o the_o cause_n 2._o by_o the_o order_n 3._o by_o the_o quality_n 4._o by_o the_o fruit_n 5._o by_o the_o continuance_n of_o it_o 1_o it_o be_v the_o gospel_n cause_n and_o nothing_o but_o it_o that_o can_v work_v in_o man_n heart_n a_o true_a desire_n after_o christ_n because_o by_o it_o alone_o be_v christ_n reveal_v and_o offer_v 2_o it_o follow_v upon_o the_o forenamed_a grief_n for_o sin_n order_n and_o despair_n of_o succour_n in_o ourselves_o or_o other_o 12._o the_o apostle_n use_v this_o as_o a_o motive_n to_o stir_v up_o man_n to_o believe_v in_o christ_n that_o there_o be_v not_o salvation_n in_o any_o other_o 3_o it_o be_v both_o a_o hearty_a and_o true_a desire_n quality_n and_o also_o a_o vehement_a and_o earnest_a desire_n for_o the_o first_o of_o these_o it_o be_v not_o only_o a_o outward_a desire_n of_o the_o tongue_n but_o a_o inward_a desire_n of_o the_o soul_n 2._o my_o soul_n pant_v my_o soul_n their_o st_z for_o god_n say_v david_n this_o inward_a hearty_a desire_n be_v best_a know_v to_o a_o man_n own_o self_n 11._o for_o what_o man_n know_v the_o thing_n of_o a_o man_n save_o the_o spirit_n of_o a_o man_n which_o be_v in_o he_o for_o the_o second_o it_o be_v a_o great_a desire_n than_o the_o desire_n of_o any_o other_o thing_n can_v be_v no_o man_n so_o desire_v any_o earthly_a thing_n as_o the_o poor_a sinner_n desire_v christ_n if_o it_o be_v a_o true_a desire_n therefore_o the_o scripture_n use_v such_o metaphor_n to_o set_v it_o forth_o as_o imply_v great_a ardency_n as_o hunger_a thirst_a etc._n etc._n whereof_o we_o have_v hear_v 23._o before_o 10._o balaams_n slight_a wish_n can_v be_v no_o cause_n or_o sign_n of_o faith_n 4._o fruit_n it_o make_v a_o man_n careful_a and_o conscionable_a in_o 44._o use_v the_o mean_n which_o god_n have_v appoint_v to_o breed_v faith_n yea_o and_o earnest_n in_o call_v upon_o god_n to_o bless_v those_o mean_n and_o to_o be_v merciful_a unto_o he_o 13._o as_o the_o poor_a publican_n do_v 5_o it_o still_o raise_v up_o and_o preserve_v a_o appetite_n after_o continuance_n christ_n 29._o even_o after_o we_o have_v taste_v he_o
be_v a_o expectation_n of_o such_o good_a thing_n to_o come_v be_v as_o god_n have_v promise_v and_o faith_n believe_v 1_o in_o expectation_n especial_o consist_v the_o very_a nature_n of_o hope_n 〈◊〉_d if_o we_o hope_v etc._n etc._n 7._o we_o wait_v david_n join_v hope_v and_o wait_v together_o as_o imply_v one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n 7._o wait_v upon_o the_o lord_n and_o hope_v in_o he_o 2_o good_a thing_n be_v the_o proper_a object_n of_o hope_n 8._o herein_o it_o differ_v from_o fear_n we_o fear_v thing_n evil_a and_o hurtful_a i_o look_v that_o be_v hope_v for_o good_a say_v job_n the_o thing_n namely_o that_o evil_a thing_n which_o i_o fear_v be_v come_v upon_o i_o job_n 3._o 25_o &_o 30._o 26._o 3_o these_o good_a thing_n be_v to_o come_v not_o past_a nor_o present_a which_o either_o be_v or_o have_v be_v see_v 24._o hope_v which_o be_v see_v be_v no_o hope_n for_o how_o can_v a_o man_n hope_v for_o that_o which_o he_o see_v 4_o they_o be_v also_o such_o as_o god_n have_v promise_v for_o the_o ground_n of_o our_o hope_n be_v the_o promise_n of_o god_n who_o be_v faithful_a and_o true_a we_o may_v well_o wait_v for_o that_o which_o he_o have_v promise_v whatsoever_o it_o be_v in_o this_o respect_n this_o true_a hope_n be_v term_v 23._o the_o hope_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o be_v a_o hope_n which_o wait_v for_o those_o thing_n which_o in_o the_o gospel_n be_v promise_v 26._o this_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o simeons_n hope_n these_o promise_n be_v of_o all_o needful_a thing_n in_o this_o world_n both_o spiritual_a and_o temporal_a of_o assistance_n under_o all_o cross_n and_o of_o deliverance_n from_o they_o and_o at_o length_n of_o eternal_a glory_n and_o happiness_n in_o heaven_n which_o because_o it_o be_v further_a off_o and_o include_v in_o it_o a_o accomplishment_n of_o all_o other_o promise_n be_v the_o most_o proper_a object_n of_o hope_n in_o which_o respect_n the_o scripture_n do_v thus_o entitle_v it_o 8._o hope_v of_o salvation_n 7._o hope_v of_o eternal_a life_n 2._o hope_v of_o glory_n etc._n etc._n 5_o the_o thing_n we_o hope_v for_o be_v also_o such_o as_o faith_n believe_v for_o there_o be_v such_o a_o relation_n betwixt_o faith_n and_o hope_n as_o be_v betwixt_o a_o mother_n and_o a_o daughter_n faith_n be_v the_o mother_n that_o bring_v forth_o hope_n and_o hope_n be_v a_o bless_a daughter_n which_o nourish_v faith_n 1._o faith_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o thing_n hope_v for_o till_o a_o thing_n be_v believe_v a_o man_n will_v never_o hope_v for_o it_o 5._o by_o faith_n we_o wait_v that_o be_v faith_n cause_v we_o to_o wait_v again_o except_o a_o man_n hope_v and_o wait_v for_o that_o which_o he_o believe_v his_o faith_n will_v soon_o decay_v §._o 4._o of_o assurance_n and_o patience_n of_o hope_n thus_o in_o general_n we_o see_v what_o hope_n be_v hope_n there_o be_v two_o especial_a property_n which_o the_o scripture_n do_v oft_o annexe_v to_o hope_n 1_o assurance_n 2_o patience_n for_o assurance_n express_o say_v the_o apostle_n assurance_n 11._o show_v diligence_n to_o the_o full_a assurance_n of_o hope_n in_o regard_n of_o this_o property_n it_o be_v say_v 5._o hope_n make_v not_o ashamed_a that_o be_v disappoint_v not_o he_o that_o hope_v of_o the_o thing_n which_o he_o wait_v for_o so_o as_o he_o need_v not_o be_v ashamed_a of_o his_o hope_n fit_o therefore_o be_v it_o term_v 19_o a_o anchor_n of_o the_o soul_n both_o sure_a and_o steadfast_a according_a to_o the_o quality_n and_o quantity_n of_o faith_n be_v the_o quality_n and_o quantity_n of_o hope_n what_o a_o man_n believe_v that_o he_o hope_v for_o as_o he_o believe_v so_o he_o hope_v for_o it_o but_o true_a faith_n do_v assure_o believe_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n promise_n therefore_o true_a hope_n do_v certain_o expect_v they_o for_o there_o be_v the_o same_o prop_n to_o uphold_v our_o hope_n as_o be_v for_o our_o faith_n to_o wit_n the_o goodness_n power_n truth_n and_o other_o like_a attribute_n of_o god_n hope_n arise_v not_o from_o man_n promise_n nor_o be_v nourish_v by_o man_n merit_n our_o adversary_n make_v uncertainty_n a_o property_n of_o hope_n hope_n and_o ground_n it_o upon_o conjecture_n and_o probability_n whereby_o they_o take_v away_o one_o main_a difference_n betwixt_o the_o hope_n of_o sound_a christian_n and_o carnal_a libertine_n and_o clean_o overthrow_v the_o nature_n of_o save_v hope_n for_o though_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o flesh_n the_o best_a may_v sometime_o waver_v in_o their_o hope_n as_o well_o as_o in_o their_o faith_n yet_o be_v not_o this_o waver_a of_o the_o nature_n of_o hope_n but_o the_o more_o hope_n increase_v the_o more_o be_v doubt_v dispel_v for_o patience_n 25._o that_o also_o be_v express_o attribute_v to_o hope_n if_o we_o hope_v for_o that_o we_o see_v not_o we_o do_v with_o patience_n wait_v for_o it_o how_o needful_a it_o be_v that_o our_o hope_n be_v accompany_v with_o patience_n we_o shall_v see_v hereafter_o §._o 5._o of_o the_o agreement_n betwixt_o faith_n and_o hope_n hope_n agree_v with_o faith_n in_o many_o thing_n agree_v for_o example_n in_o these_o author_n in_o the_o author_n and_o worker_n of_o they_o both_o which_o be_v god_n holy_a spirit_n as_o 22._o faith_n be_v a_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n so_o 13._o we_o abound_v in_o hope_n through_o the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n matter_n in_o the_o common_a matter_n for_o both_o be_v save_v and_o sanctify_a grace_n as_o 8._o we_o be_v save_v by_o faith_n 25._o so_o also_o by_o hope_n and_o as_o 9_o by_o faith_n the_o heart_n be_v purify_v so_o 3_o he_o that_o have_v hope_n purge_v himself_o ground_n in_o the_o ground_n of_o they_o both_o of_o they_o be_v ground_v on_o god_n promise_n as_o we_o have_v hear_v property_n in_o the_o forenamed_a property_n assurance_n and_o patience_n the_o same_o apostle_n that_o make_v mention_n of_o 11._o assurance_n of_o hope_n mention_v also_o 21._o assurance_n of_o faith_n and_o as_o 25._o he_o that_o hope_v wait_v with_o patience_n so_o 16._o he_o which_o believe_v make_v not_o haste_n continuance_n in_o continuance_n which_o be_v only_o till_o they_o have_v bring_v we_o to_o the_o possession_n of_o the_o inheritance_n promise_v in_o which_o respect_n love_n which_o continue_v even_o in_o heaven_n be_v prefer_v both_o to_o faith_n and_o hope_n effect_n in_o many_o excellent_a effect_n as_o be_v a_o clear_a and_o quiet_a conscience_n a_o utter_a denial_n of_o a_o man_n self_n a_o cast_v of_o himself_o whole_o on_o god_n grace_n a_o patient_a bear_n of_o all_o cross_n perseverance_n unto_o the_o end_n etc._n etc._n §._o 6._o of_o the_o difference_n betwixt_o faith_n and_o hope_n they_o differ_v in_o these_o thing_n especial_o differ_v 1_o in_o their_o order_n faith_n be_v first_o for_o it_o bring_v forth_o hope_n 1._o faith_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o thing_n hope_v for_o 2_o in_o the_o kind_n of_o object_n faith_n be_v also_o of_o thing_n 3._o past_a and_o 29._o present_a hope_v only_o of_o thing_n to_o come_v object_n faith_n be_v also_o of_o thing_n to_o come_v for_o we_o believe_v eternal_a life_n answ_n faith_n give_v 1._o a_o subsistence_n and_o present_a be_v to_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v to_o come_v by_o it_o we_o believe_v those_o good_a thing_n which_o be_v promise_v to_o be_v we_o though_o the_o possession_n of_o they_o be_v to_o come_v 3_o in_o their_o nature_n faith_n believe_v the_o very_a truth_n of_o god_n promise_n and_o 33._o seal_v that_o god_n be_v true_a hope_n wait_v till_o god_n manifest_a and_o accomplish_v his_o truth_n thus_o we_o see_v that_o hope_n be_v a_o different_a and_o distinct_a grace_n from_o faith_n yea_o so_o as_o it_o may_v be_v of_o use_v when_o faith_n fail_v and_o it_o serve_v to_o cherish_v and_o uphold_v faith_n needful_a it_o be_v therefore_o that_o unto_o faith_n it_o be_v add_v §._o 7._o of_o the_o resemblance_n betwixt_o hope_n and_o a_o helmet_n fit_o be_v hope_n resemble_v to_o a_o helmet_n helmet_n which_o according_a to_o the_o notation_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d greek_a word_n cover_v the_o head_n all_o over_o so_o as_o under_o it_o may_v be_v comprise_v the_o beaver_n and_o whatsoever_o cover_v the_o face_n the_o use_n of_o this_o helmet_n be_v to_o keep_v and_o fence_v the_o head_n safe_a from_o arrow_n dart_n bullet_n sword_n and_o other_o weapon_n whereby_o it_o may_v otherwise_o be_v sore_o wound_v and_o the_o man_n be_v kill_v downright_a he_o that_o have_v his_o head_n and_o face_n well_o and_o safe_o cover_v will_v be_v bold_a and_o courageous_a without_o fear_n lift_v up_o his_o head_n and_o look_v his_o enemy_n in_o the_o face_n and_o so_o bold_o go_v on_o forward_o not_o fear_v arrow_n dart_n or_o any_o such_o thing_n that_o shall_v be_v shoot_v
12._o of_o the_o need_n of_o hope_n in_o regard_n of_o our_o own_o weakness_n 4_o we_o have_v need_n of_o hope_n weak_a in_o regard_n of_o our_o own_o weakness_n for_o we_o be_v very_o prone_a by_o nature_n to_o think_v that_o god_n forget_v we_o and_o remember_v not_o his_o promise_n make_v to_o we_o if_o at_o least_o it_o be_v a_o long_a time_n before_o he_o accomplish_v they_o or_o if_o he_o bring_v we_o to_o any_o straits_n and_o seem_v to_o hide_v his_o face_n from_o us._n david_n be_v herewith_o sore_o tempt_v it_o make_v he_o cry_v out_o and_o say_v 1._o how_o long_o will_v thou_o forget_v i_o o_o lord_n for_o ever_o how_o long_o will_v thou_o hide_v thy_o face_n from_o i_o but_o what_o uphold_v he_o himself_o show_v that_o it_o be_v his_o hope_n for_o in_o the_o same_o psalm_n he_o say_v 5._o i_o trust_v in_o thy_o mercy_n it_o be_v the_o office_n of_o hope_n in_o this_o respect_n to_o make_v we_o hope_v above_o hope_n as_o 8._o abraham_n and_o against_o sense_n as_o 15._o job._n thus_o we_o see_v that_o hope_n be_v so_o needful_a as_o there_o be_v no_o live_n in_o this_o world_n without_o it_o herein_o be_v the_o proverb_n verify_v if_o it_o be_v not_o for_o hope_v the_o heart_n will_v break_v §._o 13._o of_o get_v and_o preserve_v hope_n let_v we_o therefore_o in_o the_o next_o place_n observe_v how_o it_o may_v be_v get_v first_o get_v second_o preserve_v three_o well_o use_v 1_o it_o be_v get_v by_o the_o same_o mean_v that_o faith_n be_v for_o it_o be_v the_o daughter_n of_o faith_n etc._n the_o mean_n which_o beget_v faith_n do_v immediate_o hereupon_o beget_v hope_n 2_o it_o be_v preserve_v by_o two_o mean_n especial_o preserve_v 1._o by_o a_o due_a consideration_n and_o full_a persuasion_n of_o god_n property_n which_o make_v we_o patient_o abide_v for_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o his_o promise_n 2_o by_o a_o faithful_a remembrance_n of_o god_n former_a deal_n four_o special_a property_n of_o god_n be_v for_o this_o purpose_n to_o be_v observe_v 1._o his_o free_a grace_n 2._o his_o infinite_a power_n 3._o his_o infallible_a truth_n 4._o his_o unsearchable_a wisdom_n for_o be_v in_o our_o heart_n persuade_v by_o faith_n hope_n first_o that_o the_o same_o grace_n which_o move_v god_n to_o make_v any_o gracious_a promise_n will_v further_o move_v he_o to_o accomplish_v it_o and_o second_o that_o he_o be_v able_a to_o do_v it_o and_o three_o so_o faithful_a that_o not_o a_o word_n which_o he_o have_v say_v shall_v fall_v to_o the_o ground_n yea_o and_o four_a that_o he_o be_v most_o wise_a in_o appoint_v the_o fit_a time_n and_o season_n for_o all_o thing_n so_o as_o may_v most_o make_v to_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o his_o child_n good_n we_o be_v thus_o bring_v to_o wait_v and_o to_o continue_v wait_v on_o god_n without_o prescribe_v any_o time_n to_o he_o till_o he_o have_v actual_o perform_v what_o he_o faithful_o promise_v §._o 14._o of_o experience_n nourish_v hope_n god_n former_a deal_n both_o with_o other_o hope_n and_o also_o with_o ourselves_o be_v faithful_o remember_v work_v such_o a_o 4._o experience_n as_o can_v but_o bring_v forth_o hope_n for_o this_o experience_n do_v evident_o demonstrate_v what_o god_n be_v willing_a and_o able_a to_o do_v 5._o hereby_o be_v david_n hope_n much_o cherish_v and_o strengthen_v 11._o this_o mean_n do_v st_n james_n use_v to_o strengthen_v the_o hope_n of_o christian_a jew_n bring_v to_o their_o memory_n god_n deal_v with_o job._n for_o this_o end_n we_o must_v acquaint_v ourselves_o with_o the_o history_n of_o former_a time_n especial_o such_o as_o be_v record_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o 4._o whatsoever_o thing_n be_v write_v afore_o time_n namely_o in_o those_o scripture_n be_v write_v for_o our_o learning_n that_o we_o through_o patience_n and_o comfort_n of_o the_o scripture_n may_v have_v hope_n it_o be_v also_o good_a to_o be_v acquaint_v with_o other_o ecclesiastical_a history_n but_o especial_o to_o observe_v god_n deal_n in_o our_o own_o time_n the_o 4._o experience_n which_o most_o of_o all_o bring_v forth_o hope_n be_v that_o which_o we_o have_v of_o god_n deal_v with_o ourselves_o whereof_o we_o have_v two_o notable_a example_n one_o of_o jacob_n ge●_n 32._o 10._o the_o other_o of_o david_n 1_o sam._n 17._o 37._o for_o this_o end_n we_o be_v well_o to_o observe_v and_o remember_v all_o those_o gracious_a favour_n which_o god_n from_o time_n to_o time_n vouchsafe_v to_o we_o and_o not_o careless_o let_v they_o slip_v at_o the_o time_n present_a nor_o negligent_o forget_v they_o in_o the_o time_n past_a the_o israelite_n in_o the_o wilderness_n fail_v in_o both_o these_o 7._o they_o understand_v not_o god_n wonder_n while_o god_n be_v do_v they_o neither_o afterward_o do_v they_o remember_v the_o multitude_n of_o god_n mercy_n this_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o they_o can_v not_o wait_v till_o the_o time_n appoint_v for_o their_o enter_v into_o canaan_n be_v come_v but_o faint_v and_o fall_v in_o the_o wilderness_n §._o 15._o of_o meditate_v on_o the_o end_n of_o hope_n to_o these_o may_v be_v add_v as_o a_o further_a mean_n to_o uphold_v and_o cherish_v hope_n hope_n a_o serious_a and_o frequent_a meditation_n of_o the_o end_n of_o our_o hope_n 36_o namely_o that_o rich_a and_o glorious_a inheritance_n which_o christ_n have_v purchase_v for_o his_o saint_n and_o god_n have_v promise_v unto_o they_o much_o may_v be_v say_v to_o amplify_v this_o point_n but_o i_o will_v refer_v it_o to_o the_o private_a meditation_n of_o the_o reader_n and_o let_v it_o the_o rather_o be_v meditate_a of_o because_o we_o see_v the_o hope_n of_o worldly_a man_n to_o be_v sustain_v with_o matter_n which_o be_v no_o way_n comparable_a hereunto_o observe_v what_o their_o hope_n be_v in_o earthly_a thing_n which_o be_v very_o uncertain_a 7._o the_o husbandman_n wait_v for_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o have_v long_a patience_n for_o it_o until_o he_o receive_v the_o former_a and_o the_o latter_a rain_n as_o the_o husbandman_n so_o the_o soldier_n the_o mariner_n the_o merchant_n who_o not_o their_o hope_n make_v they_o unter_v much_o and_o send_v themselves_o forth_o to_o great_a danger_n &_o yet_o oft_o they_o fail_v of_o their_o hope_n shall_v christian_n of_o all_o other_o cast_v away_o their_o hope_n the_o end_n whereof_o be_v more_o excellent_a than_o all_o thing_n in_o sea_n and_o land_n which_o also_o they_o be_v sure_a to_o receive_v if_o they_o faint_v not_o 35._o cast_v not_o away_o your_o confidence_n which_o have_v great_a recompense_n of_o reward_n §._o 16._o of_o the_o resemblance_n betwixt_o hope_n and_o a_o anchor_n 3_o the_o use_n of_o hope_n may_v fi●ly_o be_v set_v forth_o by_o that_o other_o metaphor_n whereunto_o hope_n be_v resemble_v use_v namely_o a_o anchor_n heb._n 6._o 19_o 1_o it_o must_v be_v cast_v upon_o a_o sure_a ground_n ground_n if_o a_o anchor_n becast_n into_o a_o bottomless_a sea_n where_o be_v no_o ground_n or_o on_o quick_a sand_n which_o be_v no_o sure_a ground_n it_o be_v of_o no_o use_n the_o ship_n may_v be_v toss_v up_o and_o down_o and_o suffer_v wrack_n for_o all_o that_o the_o only_a sure_a ground_n of_o hope_n be_v god_n promise_v reveal_v in_o his_o word_n that_o this_o be_v a_o most_o firm_a ground_n can_v be_v doubt_v of_o unless_o the_o goodness_n power_n and_o faithfulness_n of_o god_n be_v call_v into_o question_n for_o as_o god_n himself_o be_v so_o be_v his_o word_n faithful_a and_o true_a sure_a and_o certain_a nothing_o more_o firm_a and_o stable_a 18._o till_o heaven_n and_o earth_n perish_v one_o jot_n or_o title_n of_o god_n word_n shall_v not_o escape_v till_o all_o thing_n be_v fulfil_v 19_o david_n cast_v the_o anchor_n of_o his_o hope_n upon_o this_o ground_n we_o be_v therefore_o to_o acquaint_v ourselves_o with_o god_n manifold_a promise_n 2_o it_o must_v be_v fast_o fix_v on_o that_o sure_a ground_n ground_n if_o a_o anchor_n only_o lie_v upon_o the_o ground_n and_o be_v not_o fix_v on_o it_o as_o good_a be_v without_o ground_n then_o be_v hope_n fast_o fix_v on_o god_n promise_n when_o his_o promise_n be_v steadfast_o believe_v faith_n make_v a_o way_n and_o entrance_n for_o hope_n etc._n abraham_n first_o believe_v god_n promise_n and_o then_o wait_v for_o it_o first_o therefore_o labour_v for_o true_a and_o sound_a faith_n in_o god_n promise_n then_o will_v thy_o hope_n be_v sure_a and_o steadfast_a 3_o it_o must_v oft_o be_v settle_v and_o fix_v anew_o hold_n if_o a_o anchor_n loose_a and_o slacken_v after_o it_o have_v once_o be_v fasten_v a_o storm_n may_v cartie_n the_o ship_n away_o where_o then_o be_v the_o benefit_n of_o the_o former_a fasten_n our_o hope_n in_o regard_n of_o our_o own_o weakness_n and_o the_o
not_o thus_o search_v the_o scripture_n instead_o of_o god_n word_n we_o may_v allege_v our_o own_o conceit_n §._o 3._o of_o the_o mean_n to_o find_v out_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n for_o our_o help_n in_o find_v out_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n there_o be_v diverse_a profitable_a mean_n as_o 1_o understanding_n of_o the_o original_a tongue_n etc._n diverse_a error_n &_o heresy_n have_v be_v draw_v from_o translation_n it_o be_v likely_a that_o the_o first_o thing_n that_o move_v papist_n to_o make_v marriage_n a_o sacrament_n be_v the_o word_n sacramentum_fw-la which_o the_o vulgar_a translation_n use_v ephes_n 5._o 32._o and_o which_o the_o rh●mist_n translate_v a_o sacrament_n but_o 〈◊〉_d the_o original_n signify_v a_o mystery_n or_o secret_a beside_o every_o language_n have_v proper_a kind_n of_o speech_n which_o be_v translate_v word_n for_o word_n in_o other_o language_n will_v seem_v obsurd_a so_o that_o for_o the_o true_a understanding_n of_o the_o propriety_n of_o many_o scripture_n phrase_n knowledge_n of_o the_o original_a tongue_n be_v needful_a 2_o skill_n in_o the_o art_n whereby_o proper_a and_o figurative_a phrase_n may_v be_v discern_v and_o distinguish_v and_o whereby_o the_o true_a construction_n of_o word_n and_o just_a consequence_n of_o argument_n may_v be_v observe_v these_o especial_o be_v for_o the_o learned_a wherein_o the_o valearned_a must_v seek_v the_o help_n of_o the_o learned_a 3_o knowledge_n of_o the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v of_o the_o fundamental_a point_n of_o our_o christian_a religion_n that_o no_o sense_n be_v make_v contrary_a to_o any_o of_o they_o the_o literal_a acceptation_n of_o these_o word_n 26._o this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o the_o heresy_n of_o transubstantiation_n ground_v thereon_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o six_o article_n of_o our_o creed_n he_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n and_o fit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n 4_o observation_n of_o the_o scope_n of_o that_o place_n which_o be_v interpret_v and_o of_o the_o circumstance_n go_v before_o and_o follow_v after_o thus_o may_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o that_o parable_n touch_v the_o samaritan_n &c_n which_o show_v mercy_n to_o the_o man_n wound_v and_o half_a dead_a be_v easy_o find_v out_o 5_o compare_v one_o place_n with_o another_o thus_o the_o meaning_n of_o many_o type_n and_o prophecy_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n may_v be_v understand_v by_o the_o application_n of_o they_o in_o the_o new_a by_o compare_v obscure_a place_n with_o perspicuous_a place_n the_o obscure_a will_v be_v make_v perspicuous_a 6_o prayer_n 11._o for_o thereby_o the_o spirit_n of_o revelation_n whereof_o the_o apostle_n speak_v ephes_n 1._o 17._o be_v obtain_v therefore_o david_n pray_v unto_o god_n to_o open_v his_o eye_n that_o he_o may_v see_v the_o wonder_n of_o god_n law_n psal_n 119._o 18._o 7_o faith_n and_o obedience_n to_o god_n word_n so_o far_o as_o it_o be_v make_v know_v god_n give_v over_o such_o to_o believe_v lie_n who_o receive_v not_o or_o love_v not_o the_o truth_n §._o 4._o of_o the_o resemblance_n betwixt_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o a_o sword_n a_o sword_n sword_n whereunto_o the_o word_n be_v compare_v have_v a_o double_a use_n one_o to_o defend_v a_o man_n from_o the_o assault_n of_o his_o enemy_n they_o who_o can_v well_o use_v a_o sword_n find_v a_o great_a use_n hereof_o even_o in_o this_o respect_n the_o other_o be_v to_o annoy_v drive_v back_o and_o destroy_v a_o man_n enemy_n 10_o this_o double_a use_n do_v eleazar_n one_o of_o david_n worthy_n make_v of_o his_o sword_n which_o he_o use_v so_o long_o that_o it_o cleave_v to_o his_o hand_n again_o he_o defend_v himself_o and_o the_o israelite_n and_o destroy_v the_o philistines_n therewith_o thus_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v of_o great_a use_n both_o to_o defend_v ●s_n from_o all_o the_o assault_n of_o our_o spiritual_a enemy_n and_o also_o ●o_o drive_v away_o confound_v and_o destroy_v they_o it_o be_v profitable_a for_o doctrine_n and_o reproof_n for_o instruction_n and_o correction_n 2._o tim._n 3._o 16._o this_o be_v evident_a by_o christ_n manner_n of_o use_v the_o word_n ●n_v his_o conflict_n with_o satan_n by_o it_o he_o do_v defend_v himself_o against_o the_o 4._o first_o and_o 7._o second_o assault_n and_o 10._o by_o it_o in_o the_o ●hird_n he_o drive_v the_o devil_n away_o thus_o he_o use_v it_o afterward_o in_o his_o conflict_n with_o scribe_n pharisee_n sadducee_n ●nd_v other_o when_o any_o thing_n be_v object_v against_o christ_n ●sually_o he_o 5._o defend_v himself_o with_o the_o scripture_n and_o with_o the_o scripture_n he_o 44._o confound_v they_o so_o do_v etc._n ste●hen_n 28._o apollo_n and_o all_o the_o apostle_n by_o the_o word_n also_o may_v all_o carnal_a and_o fleshly_a lust_n be_v cut_v down_o and_o subdue_v 8._o as_o flesh_n may_v be_v cut_v in_o piece_n by_o a_o sword_n wherefore_o as_o gentleman_n soldier_n and_o traveller_n always_o have_v their_o sword_n by_o their_o side_n or_o in_o their_o hand_n ready_a to_o defend_v themselves_o and_o to_o spoil_v their_o enemy_n so_o ought_v we_o always_o to_o have_v this_o sword_n in_o readiness_n let_v we_o show_v ourselves_o as_o wise_a and_o careful_a for_o the_o safety_n of_o our_o soul_n as_o natural_a man_n for_o their_o body_n §._o 5._o why_o the_o word_n be_v call_v a_o sword_n of_o the_o spirit_n use_v this_o word_n of_o god_n be_v call_v the_o sword_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o 21._o author_n of_o it_o which_o be_v the_o holy_a spirit_n so_o also_o of_o the_o nature_n and_o kind_n of_o it_o for_o it_o be_v spiritual_a and_o so_o oppose_v to_o a_o material_a sword_n make_v of_o mettle_n which_o may_v be_v call_v the_o sword_n of_o flesh_n to_o this_o purpose_n the_o apostle_n say_v 4._o the_o weapon_n of_o our_o warfare_n be_v not_o carnal_a not_o carnal_a be_v in_o effect_n as_o much_o as_o spiritual_a hence_o be_v it_o that_o it_o be_v so_o 12._o lively_a and_o powerful_a sharp_a than_o any_o two_o edge_a sword_n pierce_v even_o to_o the_o divide_v asunder_o of_o sou●_n and_o spirit_n and_o of_o the_o joint_n and_o marrow_n and_o be_v a_o discerner_n of_o the_o thought_n and_o intent_n of_o the_o heart_n be_v it_o not_o spiritual_a it_o can_v not_o possible_o pierce_v so_o deep_a it_o can_v not_o discern_v the_o thought_n of_o the_o heart_n neither_o can_v it_o any_o way_n annoy_v the_o devil_n who_o be_v not_o flesh_n and_o blood_n as_o we_o have_v hear_v but_o a_o spirit_n behold_v god_n goodness_n and_o wisdom_n in_o furnish_v we_o with_o such_o a_o weapon_n as_o our_o great_a enemy_n even_o they_o who_o be_v not_o flesh_n and_o blood_n do_v dread_a and_o that_o not_o without_o cause_n because_o it_o be_v of_o power_n to_o confound_v they_o so_o as_o if_o we_o be_v wise_a skilful_a and_o careful_a in_o use_v i●_n we_o 14._o need_v not_o fear_v their_o fear_n nor_o be_v trouble_v 28_o but_o we_o shall_v rather_o strike_v dread_a and_o terror_n into_o they_o §._o 6._o of_o the_o mean_n of_o well_o use_v the_o word_n for_o the_o well_o use_v of_o this_o spiritual_a sword_n knowledge_n four_o especial_a grace_n be_v needful_a first_o knowledge_n second_o wisdom_n three_o faith_n four_o obedience_n 1_o for_o knowledge_n in_o all_o thing_n that_o we_o do_v we_o must_v by_o the_o word_n understand_v and_o know_v what_o god_n say_v what_o be_v his_o good_a will_n please_v and_o acceptable_a to_o he_o for_o which_o we_o have_v both_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o psalmist_n psal_n 85._o 8_o and_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o apostle_n rome_n 12._o 2._o eph._n 5._o 17._o for_o by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n only_o and_o alone_o we_o may_v attain_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o whole_a will_n of_o god_n demet._n without_o knowledge_n of_o god_n truth_n we_o shall_v be_v always_o waven_a and_o never_o establish_v in_o any_o truth_n whether_o it_o concern_v judgement_n or_o practice_n nor_o yet_o with_o courage_n resist_v any_o contrary_a corruption_n §._o 7._o of_o the_o mean_n to_o attain_v knowledge_n by_o the_o word_n for_o this_o observe_v these_o direction_n use_v 1_o read_v the_o word_n diligent_o and_o frequent_o 13_o give_v attendance_n thereunto_o and_o that_o not_o only_o with_o other_o but_o also_o alone_o with_o thyself_o that_o thou_o may_v better_o observe_v it_o have_v set_v time_n for_o this_o end_n and_o be_v constant_a in_o observe_v they_o if_o by_o any_o urgent_a occasion_n thy_o task_n be_v omit_v at_o one_o time_n double_v it_o another_o time_n 2_o 8_o meditate_v of_o that_o which_o thou_o have_v read_v 97_o meditation_n be_v a_o especial_a mean_n to_o help_v both_o understanding_n and_o memory_n a_o thing_n at_o first_o read_v be_v not_o so_o well_o conceive_v 〈◊〉_d when_o it_o be_v serious_o
ponder_v this_o serious_a ponder_v take_v a_o deep_a impression_n of_o it_o in_o our_o memory_n 3_o attend_v to_o the_o preach_n of_o god_n word_n and_o bring_v thereunto_o a_o mind_n willing_a to_o learn_v this_o be_v god_n ordinance_n in_o the_o use_n whereof_o we_o may_v well_o wait_v and_o depend_v upon_o god_n for_o his_o blessing_n and_o that_o 1_o to_o enlighten_v our_o understanding_n 2_o to_o work_n upon_o our_o affection_n 3_o to_o teach_v we_o how_o to_o apply_v it_o §._o 8._o of_o wisdom_n in_o apply_v the_o word_n 2_o for_o wisdom_n wisdom_n it_o teach_v we_o right_o to_o apply_v the_o word_n and_o that_o both_o in_o the_o true_a sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o that_o particular_a place_n which_o we_o allege_v and_o also_o according_a to_o the_o present_a matter_n for_o which_o it_o be_v allege_v if_o we_o miss_v of_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o place_n it_o be_v no_o word_n of_o god_n but_o a_o conceit_n of_o our_o own_o brain_n 16._o we_o pervert_v the_o scripture_n to_o our_o own_o destruction_n if_o it_o be_v not_o pertinent_a to_o the_o matter_n it_o be_v as_o a_o plaster_n or_o a_o medicine_n wrong_o apply_v which_o heal_v when_o it_o shall_v draw_v and_o so_o cause_v inward_a fester_v or_o draw_v when_o it_o shall_v heal_v and_o so_o make_v the_o sore_a or_o wound_n much_o worse_o a_o potion_n mistake_v oft_o kill_v the_o patient_a even_o so_o if_o the_o terror_n of_o the_o law_n be_v urge_v to_o a_o wound_a conscience_n they_o may_v dri●_n a_o man_n into_o utter_a despair_n or_o if_o the_o sweet_a promise_n of_o th●_n gospel_n be_v apply_v to_o profane_a libertine_n and_o carnall●_n gospeler_n they_o may_v make_v they_o high_o and_o intolerably●_n presume_v nothing_o can_v be_v more_o pernicious_a than_o the_o wor●_n wrong_o apply_v it_o be_v like_o 12._o saul_n sword_n which_o never_o veined_a empty_a from_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o slay_v when_o it_o be_v hold_v o●_n against_o the_o enemy_n it_o destroy_v they_o when_o saul_n himself_o fall_v upon_o it_o it_o run_v into_o his_o own_o bowel_n it_o kille●_n he_o so_o the_o word_n well_o use_v against_o our_o spiritual_a enemy_n destroy_v they_o if_o we_o fall_v on_o it_o ourselves_o it_o m●_n be_v the_o death_n of_o our_o soul_n for_o it_o be_v 16._o either_o the_o savour_n of_o death_n or_o the_o savour_n of_o life_n needful_a it_o be_v then_o that_o unto_o knowledge_n wisdom_n be_v add_v that_o we_o may_v right_o apply_v it_o for_o this_o end_n we_o must_v observe_v as_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o the_o place_n itself_o so_o the_o occasion_n matter_n and_o end_v why_o it_o be_v allege_v that_o so_o fit_a and_o pertinent_a place_n may_v be_v allege_v thus_o do_v christ_n use_v the_o word_n he_o allege_v 4_o a_o most_o fit_a text_n against_o distrust_n so_o also_o against_o 〈◊〉_d presumption_n and_o against_o 10._o idolatry_n §._o 9_o of_o faith_n in_o god_n word_n for_o faith_n the_o power_n of_o god_n word_n be_v restrain_v thereunto_o faith_n for_o 16._o it_o be_v the_o power_n of_o god_n to_o every_o one_o that_o believe_v all_o knowledge_n and_o wisdom_n without_o it_o be_v in_o vain_a 2._o the_o word_n which_o the_o jew_n hear_v profit_v they_o not_o because_o it_o be_v not_o mix_v with_o faith_n in_o they_o that_o hear_v it_o euah_n under_o stand_v god_n word_n well_o enough_o and_o wisdom_n she_o have_v enough_o well_o to_o apply_v it_o but_o because_o she_o do_v not_o steadfast_o believe_v in_o it_o but_o be_v bring_v to_o doubt_v of_o it_o she_o lose_v the_o use_n of_o this_o sword_n her_o enemy_n come_v in_o upon_o she_o and_o kill_v she_o for_o this_o end_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v well_o to_o be_v note_v 2_o they_o be_v of_o divine_a authority_n two_o tim._n 3._o 16._o god_n oracle_n be_v record_v in_o they_o not_o one_o ●ot_n or_o ti●●le_n of_o they_o shall_v escape_v till_o all_o be_v fulfil_v mat._n 5._o 18._o this_o know_v and_o believe_v will_v bring_v we_o to_o give_v full_a assent_n to_o the_o truth_n of_o they_o §._o 10._o of_o yield_a obedience_n to_o the_o word_n for_o obedience_n in_o religion_n a_o man_n know_v no_o more_o than_o he_o practise_v obedience_n in_o this_o respect_n it_o be_v true_a that_o 2._o if_o a_o man_n think_v he_o know_v any_o thing_n he_o know_v nothing_o yet_o as_o he_o ought_v to_o know_v so_o as_o without_o obedience_n all_o knowledge_n be_v nothing_o 24_o as_o saint_n james_n declare_v by_o a_o fit_a comparison_n take_v from_o one_o that_o behold_v his_o face_n in_o a_o glass_n and_o forget_v what_o manner_n of_o one_o he_o be_v this_o therefore_o must_v be_v add_v to_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o herein_o we_o must_v be_v careful_a that_o 32_o we_o turn_v neither_o to_o the_o right_a hand_n nor_o to_o the_o left_a neither_o careless_o neglect_v that_o which_o be_v command_v nor_o preposterous_o do_v that_o which_o be_v forbid_v thus_o 17_o bless_a be_v they_o which_o know_v if_o they_o do_v the_o thing_n which_o they_o know_v in_o this_o experimental_a knowledge_n consist_v the_o very_a power_n of_o this_o spiritual_a sword_n by_o it_o be_v lust_n subdue_v the_o world_n crucify_v unto_o we_o and_o the_o devil_n drive_v away_o §._o 11._o of_o the_o manifold_a use_n of_o god_n word_n point_n 4_o the_o benefit_n of_o well_o use_v this_o sword_n 13._o be_v admirable_a for_o there_o be_v no_o error_n in_o judgement_n but_o may_v be_v refute_v no_o corruption_n in_o life_n but_o may_v be_v redress_v hereby_o neither_o be_v there_o any_o true_a sound_a doctrine_n but_o may_v be_v prove_v and_o maintain_v against_o all_o gainsayers_a or_o any_o virtue_n and_o duty_n but_o may_v be_v warrant_v by_o it_o and_o we_o thereby_o direct_v also_o in_o the_o performance_n thereof_o 16_o the_o apostle_n express_o say_v of_o the_o word_n that_o it_o be_v profitable_a to_o all_o these_o 100_o david_n upon_o his_o own_o experience_n affirm_v that_o by_o god_n word_n he_o be_v make_v wise_a than_o the_o ancient_n than_o his_o teacher_n than_o his_o enemy_n ancient_a man_n who_o have_v much_o experience_n of_o many_o time_n and_o of_o many_o thing_n do_v in_o those_o time_n common_o get_v much_o wisdom_n by_o their_o long_a experience_n so_o as_o 12._o among_o the_o ancient_a be_v wisdom_n and_o in_o the_o length_n of_o day_n be_v understanding_n yet_o god_n word_n teach_v david_n to_o understand_v more_o than_o experience_n can_v teach_v the_o ancient_a yea_o though_o teacher_n common_o know_v more_o than_o scholar_n or_o learner_n 7._o their_o lip_n shall_v preserve_v knowledge_n yet_o david_n by_o god_n word_n exceed_v all_o his_o teacher_n in_o knowledge_n and_o though_o enemy_n through_o their_o continall_n search_v after_o sundry_a point_n of_o policy_n and_o invent_v many_o stratagem_n and_o cunning_a wile_n as_o also_o by_o pry_v into_o the_o attempt_n of_o the_o adverse_a party_n grow_v very_o subtle_a and_o crafty_a yet_o by_o this_o word_n of_o god_n do_v david_n learn_v more_o wisdom_n than_o all_o they_o for_o god_n word_n be_v of_o a_o far_o large_a extent_n than_o man_n wit_n wisdom_n learning_n and_o experience_n can_v attain_v unto_o though_o the_o book_n wherein_o god_n word_n be_v contain_v be_v not_o comparable_a in_o multitude_n of_o letter_n syllable_n and_o word_n to_o the_o massy_a volume_n of_o many_o man_n work_n yet_o for_o substance_n of_o sound_a matter_n and_o variety_n of_o several_a and_o sundry_a direction_n all_o the_o book_n in_o the_o world_n be_v not_o comparable_a to_o it_o every_o good_a thing_n whatsoever_o may_v be_v justify_v thereby_o every_o evil_a thing_n whatsoever_o may_v be_v disprove_v thereby_o so_o as_o by_o this_o sword_n every_o good_a thing_n which_o be_v oppose_v against_o may_v be_v maintain_v and_o every_o evil_a thing_n whereunto_o we_o be_v tempt_v be_v repel_v there_o be_v no_o cross_n under_o which_o any_o man_n lie_v no_o distress_n whereunto_o any_o be_v bring_v but_o may_v be_v ease_v and_o help_v by_o god_n word_n from_o it_o may_v sound_v comfort_n be_v fetch_v by_o it_o may_v a_o man_n be_v support_v 50_o this_o be_v david_n comfort_n in_o his_o trouble_n be_v thou_o afflict_v in_o body_n or_o trouble_v in_o conscience_n be_v thy_o child_n kinsfolk_n or_o any_o other_o which_o thou_o accounte_v near_a and_o dear_a unto_o thou_o a_o vexation_n unto_o thou_o be_v thy_o estate_n decay_v be_v thou_o trouble_v with_o evil_a man_n or_o any_o other_o way_n distress_v search_v the_o scripture_n therein_o shall_v thou_o find_v comfort_n enough_o if_o right_o thou_o can_v apply_v they_o in_o a_o word_n this_o word_n of_o god_n be_v to_o the_o blind_a 105._o a_o light_n to_o they_o that_o wander_v 9_o a_o guide_n to_o they_o that_o be_v in_o distress_n 50._o a_o comfort_n to_o they_o
two_o nature_n of_o christ_n in_o one_o person_n with_o the_o like_a be_v unconceivable_a mystery_n yet_o so_o plain_o open_v in_o the_o scripture_n as_o we_o may_v well_o discern_v these_o thing_n 〈◊〉_d to_o be_v so_o though_o we_o can_v full_o conceive_v 〈◊〉_d how_o they_o shall_v be_v so_o second_o writing_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o manner_n of_o writing_n many_o abstruse_a phrase_n be_v therein_o as_o diverse_a hebraism_n which_o it_o may_v be_v be_v familiar_a to_o the_o jew_n but_o be_v obscure_a to_o we_o and_o sundry_a metaphor_n allegory_n and_o other_o trope_n and_o figure_n yet_o these_o by_o diligent_a study_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o careful_a use_n of_o the_o mean_n 3._o beforenamed_a may_v also_o be_v find_v out_o three_o person_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o person_n who_o read_v or_o hear_v the_o scripture_n 14._o natural_a man_n be_v not_o capable_a of_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n they_o can_v know_v they_o 44._o and_o the_o god_n of_o this_o world_n do_v blind_a the_o eye_n of_o wicked_a man_n yet_o 15._o he_o that_o be_v spiritual_a discern_v all_o thing_n for_o god_n give_v unto_o he_o 17._o the_o spirit_n of_o revelation_n whereby_o the_o eye_n of_o his_o understanding_n be_v open_v many_o despise_v the_o scripture_n because_o of_o the_o plainness_n of_o it_o fast_n what_o marvel_v then_o that_o god_n hide_v from_o they_o the_o great_a and_o divine_a mystery_n of_o his_o word_n how_o shall_v he_o conceive_v that_o which_o be_v hard_a who_o despise_v that_o which_o be_v easy_a four_o search_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o manner_n of_o search_v for_o if_o man_n cursory_o and_o careless_o read_v the_o scripture_n no_o marvel_n if_o they_o understand_v little_a or_o nothing_o for_o 5._o the_o promise_n of_o find_v be_v make_v to_o those_o who_o seek_v as_o for_o gold_n and_o search_v as_o for_o treasure_n §._o 20._o of_o the_o reason_n why_o the_o scripture_n be_v in_o some_o respect_v difficult_a in_o these_o and_o such_o like_a respect_n the_o scripture_n be_v indeed_o hard_o which_o the_o lord_n have_v so_o order_v for_o just_a and_o weighty_a reason_n as_o first_o to_o declare_v unto_o man_n his_o natural_a blindness_n and_o to_o suppress_v all_o self-conceit_n by_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o word_n the_o wisdom_n of_o man_n be_v find_v to_o be_v foolishness_n second_o to_o keep_v holy_a thing_n from_o hog_n and_o dog_n and_o so_o to_o make_v a_o difference_n betwixt_o the_o child_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o the_o wicked_a three_o to_o maintain_v the_o divine_a ordinance_n of_o preach_v and_o expound_v the_o scripture_n four_o to_o raise_v up_o in_o we_o a_o appetite_n after_o the_o word_n and_o a_o high_a esteem_n of_o it_o and_o to_o keep_v we_o from_o loathe_v it_o deep_o and_o profound_a matter_n be_v much_o desire_v and_o respect_v easy_a thing_n be_v soon_o loathe_v 6._o wherefore_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n have_v so_o temper_v the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o by_o the_o perspicuity_n of_o it_o we_o be_v keep_v from_o starve_a and_o by_o the_o difficulty_n of_o it_o from_o loathe_v it_o five_o to_o stir_v we_o up_o diligent_o to_o study_v and_o search_v the_o scripture_n and_o careful_o to_o use_v the_o mean_n whereby_o we_o may_v find_v out_o the_o hide_a treasure_n in_o it_o six_o to_o make_v we_o to_o call_v upon_o he_o who_o be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o give_v unto_o we_o the_o spirit_n of_o revelation_n and_o not_o to_o read_v or_o hear_v the_o word_n without_o faithful_a and_o earnest_a prayer_n §._o 21._o of_o the_o perspicuity_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o to_o return_v to_o the_o point_n though_o the_o word_n in_o the_o forename_a respect_n and_o for_o the_o forename_a reason_n be_v difficult_a and_o obscure_a yet_o be_v it_o for_o the_o most_o part_n so_o perspicuous_a as_o with_o great_a profit_n and_o to_o good_a edification_n 3_o it_o may_v be_v read_v and_o hear_v of_o the_o simple_a and_o unlearned_a and_o as_o for_o all_o the_o fundamental_a point_n of_o christian_a religion_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n they_o be_v clear_o and_o plain_o set_v down_o so_o as_o the_o humble_a and_o obedient_a heart_n may_v distinct_o without_o waver_v and_o gainsay_v conceive_v and_o believe_v they_o leand._n thus_o not_o unfit_o be_v the_o scripture_n compare_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o perspicuity_n of_o it_o to_o afoard_v over_o which_o a_o lamb_n may_v wade_v and_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o difficulty_n of_o it_o to_o a_o sea_n in_o which_o a_o elephant_n may_v swim_v §._o 22._o answer_v to_o satan_n suggestion_n of_o the_o danger_n of_o suffer_v all_o sort_n to_o read_v the_o scripture_n 4_o sugg_n it_o be_v indeed_o a_o two-edged_a sword_n but_o too_o sharp_a and_o keen_a for_o child_n it_o be_v not_o fit_a that_o layman_n woman_n and_o such_o as_o have_v not_o skill_n in_o tongue_n and_o art_n shall_v read_v it_o they_o oft_o pierce_v and_o wound_v their_o own_o soul_n &_o conscience_n with_o this_o sword_n as_o child_n hurt_v themselves_o with_o knife_n with_o this_o also_o be_v the_o papist_n exceed_o beguile_v answ_n as_o the_o word_n be_v sharp_a in_o itself_o so_o have_v simple_a it_o a_o inward_a power_n to_o give_v sharpness_n of_o wit_n &_o that_o unto_o the_o simple_a and_o to_o the_o child_n knowledge_n and_o discretion_n so_o as_o by_o the_o word_n they_o may_v learn_v well_o to_o use_v the_o word_n how_o can_v that_o be_v think_v to_o be_v unfit_a for_o layman_n &_o woman_n to_o use_v which_o god_n have_v expresiy_a command_v they_o to_o use_v except_o question_v be_v make_v of_o his_o wisdom_n as_o the_o forename_a girdle_n breastplate_n shoe_n shield_n helmet_z be_v prescribe_v to_o all_o of_o all_o sort_n so_o this_o sword_n and_o christ_n without_o exception_n of_o any_o say_v to_o all_o 39_o search_v the_o scripture_n god_n express_o command_v that_o the_o law_n be_v read_v to_o all_o even_o man_n woman_n child_n stranger_n deut._n 31._o 11._o 12._o and_o great_a reason_n there_o be_v for_o it_o for_o as_o every_o one_o eat_v for_o himself_o so_o he_o live_v by_o his_o own_o faith_n but_o the_o word_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o faith_n by_o it_o therefore_o must_v they_o know_v what_o they_o believe_v 3._o as_o for_o those_o wound_n in_o conscience_n which_o many_o receive_v by_o the_o word_n they_o be_v good_a wound_n whereby_o such_o corruption_n as_o fester_v in_o they_o be_v let_v out_o the_o conscience_n be_v more_o sound_o heal_v up_o the_o wound_n which_o it_o make_v turn_v not_o to_o fester_a sore_n §._o 23._o answer_v to_o satan_n suggestion_n of_o the_o hurt_n of_o much_o knowledge_n 5._o suggest_v too_o much_o knowledge_n be_v not_o good_a it_o 1._o puff_v up_o it_o make_v people_n contemn_v their_o brethren_n neglect_v minister_n loathe_v preach_v but_o ignorance_n be_v mother_n of_o devotion_n these_o thing_n have_v satan_n teach_v not_o only_a papist_n but_o also_o many_o other_o which_o pretend_v a_o hatred_n of_o popery_n to_o object_v against_o the_o word_n answ_n knowledge_n in_o itself_o be_v a_o very_a good_a thing_n necessary_a a_o duty_n express_o command_v 5._o join_v with_o virtue_n knowledge_n say_v saint_n peter_n yea_o saint_n paul_n go_v further_a and_o imply_v that_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d fill_v with_o knowledge_n and_o to_o 7._o abound_v therein_o and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o prophet_n complain_v that_o ●●6_n god_n people_n be_v destroy_v for_o lack_n of_o knowledge_n it_o be_v not_o knowledge_n but_o the_o abuse_n thereof_o which_o puff_v up_o and_o 1._o so_o much_o do_v the_o apostle_n imply_v now_o if_o the_o abuse_n of_o a_o good_a thing_n shall_v make_v we_o avoid_v it_o what_o good_a thing_n shall_v not_o be_v avoid_v the_o cause_n that_o minister_n or_o any_o other_o be_v contemn_v be_v not_o knowledge_n but_o that_o corruption_n which_o be_v in_o man_n even_o as_o by_o the_o venom_n in_o a_o spider_n the_o sweet_a juice_n of_o a_o flower_n be_v turn_v into_o poison_n but_o the_o truth_n be_v esteem_n that_o nothing_o make_v the_o preach_n of_o god_n word_n to_o be_v more_o high_o account_v of_o than_o knowledge_n for_o 1_o they_o who_o know_v something_o of_o the_o great_a mystery_n of_o godliness_n if_o they_o know_v it_o aright_o find_v such_o good_a thereby_o that_o earnest_o they_o desire_v to_o know_v more_o 2._o they_o desire_v also_o to_o have_v their_o affection_n wrought_v upon_o and_o that_o which_o they_o know_v to_o be_v oft_o bring_v unto_o their_o mind_n for_o which_o end_n also_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n be_v ordain_v 13._o this_o move_v s._n peter_n to_o write_v 3._o they_o who_o know_v that_o to_o be_v true_a which_o be_v preach_v do_v in_o that_o respect_n the_o better_o attend_v unto_o it_o with_o great_a assurance_n believe_v
it_o and_o more_o high_o esteem_v the_o preacher_n of_o it_o because_o they_o know_v it_o to_o be_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n thus_o the_o thessalonian_n receive_v the_o word_n preach_v 5._o in_o much_o assurance_n because_o 13._o they_o receive_v it_o not_o as_o the_o word_n of_o man_n but_o of_o god_n there_o can_v be_v no_o great_a enemy_n to_o preach_v and_o preacher_n than_o ignorance_n instance_n the_o rude_a village_n of_o the_o country_n §._o 24._o of_o ignorance_n how_o heinous_a a_o sin_n it_o be_v the_o devotion_n which_o be_v pretend_v to_o come_v from_o ignorance_n be_v mere_a superstition_n or_o which_o be_v worse_o idolatry_n so_o much_o the_o apostle_n affirm_v 8._o when_o you_o know_v not_o god_n you_o do_v sernice_a to_o they_o which_o by_o nature_n be_v not_o go_n isa_n for_o ignorance_n of_o god_n word_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o error_n as_o christ_n imply_v say_v you_o err_v not_o know_v the_o scripture_n matth._n 21._o 29._o yea_o the_o scripture_n be_v they_o which_o testify_v of_o christ_n joh._n 5._o 39_o upon_o ignorance_n of_o the_o scripture_n must_v needs_o follow_v ignorance_n of_o christ_n now_o ignorance_n be_v in_o itself_o a_o most_o odious_a vice_n 8._o against_o which_o christ_n will_v come_v in_o flame_a fire_n to_o render_v vengeance_n and_o a_o mother_n sin_n which_o bring_v forth_o many_o other_o notorious_a sin_n how_o can_v any_o good_a thing_n come_v from_o it_o certain_o this_o cavil_n which_o be_v raise_v against_o knowledge_n for_o ignorance_n have_v spring_v either_o from_o envy_n whereby_o man_n grieve_v at_o the_o knowledge_n and_o good_a part_n which_o be_v in_o other_o or_o from_o ambition_n whereby_o they_o seek_v to_o be_v eminent_a above_o all_o other_o or_o from_o policy_n seek_v thereby_o a_o cover_n for_o their_o own_o ignorance_n 29._o moses_n who_o desire_v that_o all_o the_o lord_n people_n be_v prophet_n and_o 29._o paul_n who_o wish_v that_o all_o that_o hear_v he_o be_v altogether_o as_o he_o himself_o be_v be_v otherwise_o mind_v §._o 25._o answer_v to_o satan_n suggestion_n of_o the_o non-proficiencie_n of_o many_o hearer_n 5._o sug._n many_o who_o read_v and_o hear_v much_o be_v not_o any_o whit_n the_o more_o free_v from_o assault_n the_o flesh_n world_n and_o devil_n bear_v as_o great_a a_o sway_n in_o they_o as_o in_o any_o other_o answ_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o many_o be_v most_o wrongful_o blame_v a_o more_o in_o their_o eye_n who_o love_v the_o word_n be_v make_v a_o beam_n word_n a_o molehill_n a_o mountain_n if_o indeed_o there_o be_v any_o such_o as_o there_o be_v too_o many_o the_o fault_n be_v not_o in_o the_o word_n but_o in_o themselves_o though_o the_o sun_n shine_v never_o so_o hot_a and_o oft_o on_o a_o stone_n it_o soften_v it_o nothing_o at_o all_o if_o it_o shine_v on_o clav_v it_o harden_v it_o stony_a heart_n be_v no_o whit_n better_v muddy_a claiey_n pollute_a heart_n be_v make_v worse_a the_o three_o treatise_n of_o the_o mean_n to_o use_v spiritual_a armour_n aright_o the_o first_o part_n of_o prayer_n in_o general_n ephesian_n 6._o 18._o pray_v always_o with_o all_o prayer_n and_o supplication_n in_o the_o spirit_n and_o watch_v thereunto_o with_o all_o perseverance_n and_o supplication_n for_o all_o saint_n 19_o and_o for_o i_o that_o utterance_n may_v be_v give_v unto_o i_o etc._n etc._n §._o 1._o of_o the_o join_n of_o prayer_n with_o the_o whole_a armour_n of_o god_n after_o that_o the_o apostle_n armour_n like_o a_o good_a captain_n have_v sufficient_o furnish_v the_o christian_a soldier_n from_o top_n to_o toe_n with_o all_o needful_a spiritual_a armour_n both_o defensive_a and_o offensive_a he_o proceed_v to_o instruct_v he_o how_o he_o may_v get_v and_o well_o use_v this_o armour_n prayer_n the_o best_a general_a mean_n that_o he_o can_v prescribe_v be_v prayer_n for_o that_o armour_n be_v spiritual_a and_o heavenly_a we_o fleshly_a and_o earthly_a armour_n we_o be_v as_o unfit_a to_o use_v it_o as_o a_o child_n to_o use_v a_o giant_n armour_n in_o set_v down_o this_o heavenly_a exercise_n of_o prayer_n he_o so_o set_v it_o down_o in_o the_o last_o place_n after_o all_o as_o it_o have_v a_o reference_n to_o all_o and_o such_o a_o reference_n as_o imply_v a_o joint_a use_n of_o it_o with_o all_o the_o rest_n for_o he_o use_v the_o participle_n pray_v 〈◊〉_d as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v put_v on_o the_o whole_a armour_n of_o god_n pray_v take_v girdle_n breastplate_n shoe_n shield_n helmet_n and_o sword_n pray_v hence_o i_o observe_v obser_n that_o to_o all_o other_o mean_n which_o be_v use_v for_o defence_n or_o offence_n prayer_n must_v be_v add_v it_o must_v i_o say_v be_v add_v neither_o they_o nor_o this_o omit_v but_o both_o join_v together_o excellent_o be_v this_o of_o old_a set_v forth_o by_o the_o israelite_n manner_n of_o go_v to_o battle_n 3._o as_o the_o people_n be_v to_o go_v arm_v and_o to_o fight_v so_o 9_o the_o priest_n be_v to_o go_v with_o silver_n trumpet_n and_o to_o sound_v this_o sound_v with_o silver_n trumpet_n employ_v hearty_a and_o earnest_a prayer_n note_v the_o benefit_n hereof_o 2._o chron._n 13._o 14_o etc._n etc._n thus_o etc._n while_n joshua_n and_o the_o people_n be_v fight_v with_o the_o amalakite_n moses_n stand_v lift_v up_o his_o hand_n and_o aaron_n and_o hur_z stay_v his_o hand_n this_o be_v a_o outward_a figure_n of_o their_o inward_a powerful_a prayer_n when_o moses_n let_v fall_v his_o hand_n and_o he_o leave_v to_o pray_v amalek_n prevail_v so_o while_o 10._o israel_n fight_v against_o the_o philistines_n samuel_n pray_v and_o while_o 1._o joab_n fight_v against_o aram_n david_n pray_v the_o like_a i_o may_v instance_n in_o 11_o asa_n 6._o jehosaphat_n 20._o hezekiah_n and_o other_o saint_n if_o in_o fight_v against_o flesh_n and_o blood_n saint_n be_v thus_o careful_a in_o add_v prayer_n to_o other_o mean_n how_o much_o more_o ought_v we_o so_o to_o do_v in_o our_o spiritual_a combat_n against_o spirit_n 30._o christ_n in_o his_o agony_n pray_v and_o 8._o paul_n when_o he_o be_v buffet_v of_o the_o messenger_n of_o satan_n pray_v god_n who_o have_v appoint_v mean_n of_o safety_n reason_n will_v not_o cross_v his_o own_o ordinance_n without_o the_o use_n of_o they_o he_o will_v not_o protect_v any_o but_o of_o himself_o no_o man_n be_v able_a to_o use_v the_o armour_n aright_o it_o be_v god_n which_o enable_v he_o wherefore_o because_o god_n will_v do_v nothing_o without_o we_o we_o must_v arm_v ourselves_o and_o fight_v and_o because_o we_o can_v do_v nothing_o without_o god_n we_o must_v pray_v §._o 2._o of_o the_o mean_a betwixt_o presume_v and_o tempt_a god_n use_v be_v careful_a in_o keep_v the_o golden_a mean_n betwixt_o two_o enormous_a extreme_n one_o of_o tempt_a god_n in_o neglect_n of_o the_o mean_n which_o he_o have_v appoint_v for_o our_o safety_n the_o other_o of_o presume_v against_o god_n in_o trust_v so_o much_o to_o the_o mean_n as_o we_o seek_v not_o to_o he_o for_o help_n and_o succour_v into_o both_o these_o extreme_n fall_v the_o israelite_n 2._o one_o while_o they_o will_v not_o venture_v to_o fight_v and_o so_o tempt_v the_o lord_n 4._o another_o while_o they_o will_v needs_o fight_v of_o their_o own_o head_n without_o seek_v help_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o so_o presume_v obstinate_o rebellious_a be_v they_o who_o reject_v the_o mean_n they_o clean_o cast_v themselves_o out_o of_o the_o protection_n of_o god_n presumptuous_a be_v they_o who_o trust_v to_o the_o mean_n and_o call_v not_o upon_o god_n they_o provoke_v god_n either_o 39_o to_o strip_v they_o of_o such_o thing_n as_o they_o glory_n in_o or_o else_o to_o turn_v they_o to_o their_o own_o destruction_n 49._o as_o he_o do_v the_o strength_n of_o goliath_n 23._o and_o wisdom_n of_o achitophel_n the_o middle_a way_n betwixt_o the_o rock_n of_o rebellon_n and_o gul●e_v of_o presumption_n be_v so_o to_o show_v our_o obedience_n in_o use_v all_o the_o mean_n which_o the_o lord_n prescribe_v as_o we_o manifest_v our_o confidence_n in_o he_o by_o seek_v strength_n of_o he_o 6._o those_o thing_n which_o god_n have_v join_v together_o let_v no_o man_n put_v asunder_o to_o all_o the_o forename_a grace_n add_v prayer_n pray_v for_o armour_n pray_v for_o strength_n wisdom_n and_o ability_n well_o to_o use_v armour_n pray_v for_o a_o blessing_n on_o the_o well_o use_v it_o be_v upright_o and_o pray_v righteous_a and_o pray_v patient_a faithful_a stead_n fast_o in_o hope_n expert_a in_o god_n word_n and_o pray_v pray_v before_o the_o fight_n fight_z and_o pray_v without_o prayer_n no_o good_a success_n can_v be_v expect_v through_o prayer_n we_o may_v be_v assure_v to_o be_v assist_v §._o 3._o of_o divide_v the_o word_n aright_o in_o lay_v down_o this_o doctrine_n of_o prayer_n
the_o other_o part_n and_o liniament_n to_o the_o meditation_n of_o the_o beholder_n even_o so_o be_o i_o constrain_v through_o abundance_n of_o matter_n to_o propound_v only_o some_o general_a head_n of_o this_o point_n of_o thanksgiving_n and_o to_o leave_v the_o amplification_n of_o they_o to_o your_o private_a meditation_n §._o 70_o of_o their_o blindness_n who_o can_v see_v no_o matter_n of_o thanksgiving_n use_v 2_o here_o behold_v how_o palpable_o blind_a they_o be_v who_o can_v find_v no_o matter_n of_o thanksgiving_n much_o more_o blind_a be_v these_o in_o their_o understanding_n than_o they_o in_o their_o bodily_a sight_n who_o at_o noonday_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o summer_n when_o the_o sun_n shine_v most_o bright_o can_v see_v no_o light_n at_o all_o yet_o either_o thus_o blind_a be_v many_o or_o else_o which_o be_v worse_o they_o see_v and_o will_v not_o see_v they_o know_v there_o be_v abundant_a matter_n of_o thanksgiving_n &_o yet_o will_v take_v no_o notice_n of_o any_o at_o all_o be_v not_o almost_o all_o much_o more_o ready_a to_o crave_v and_o ask_v then_o to_o give_v thanks_o i_o speak_v not_o th●s_n of_o the_o profane_a man_n of_o the_o world_n or_o of_o carnal_a &_o careless_a professor_n who_o regard_v no_o duty_n due_a unto_o god_n but_o of_o those_o who_o make_v a_o great_a and_o true_a profession_n yea_o who_o make_v conscience_n of_o their_o duty_n to_o god_n mark_v &_o observe_v if_o their_o request_n to_o god_n be_v not_o more_o frequent_a &_o fervent_a than_o their_o thanksgiving_n if_o trouble_n of_o mind_n or_o body_n if_o any_o inward_a or_o outward_a distress_n seize_v upon_o man_n if_o they_o fear_v any_o spiritual_a or_o temporal_a danger_n hang_v over_o their_o head_n how_o instant_a and_o constant_a will_v they_o be_v in_o entreat_v the_o lord_n to_o remove_v his_o heavy_a hand_n or_o if_o they_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o any_o temporal_a or_o spiritual_a good_a thing_n they_o be_v ready_a to_o do_v the_o like_a yea_o in_o ●hese_fw-mi and_o such_o like_a case_n they_o will_v beseech_v other_o to_o help_v ●hem_fw-mi with_o their_o prayer_n be_v they_o as_o thankful_a for_o good_a ●hings_n bestow_v on_o they_o and_o for_o the_o remove_n of_o evil_n from_o they_o i_o will_v they_o be_v if_o any_o be_v they_o be_v very_o ●are_a but_o i_o hope_v hereafter_o more_o will_v be_v to_o leave_v man_n private_a practice_n whereof_o we_o can_v so_o ●ell_v judge_n observe_v that_o which_o be_v in_o more_o open_a view_n what_o public_a prayer_n book_n so_o pleintiful_a in_o thanksgiving_n 〈◊〉_d in_o request_n what_o minister_n almost_o so_o careful_a in_o perform_v that_o as_o this_o i_o blame_v not_o all_o without_o exception_n many_o there_o be_v who_o be_v conscionable_a in_o this_o point_n but_o i_o tax_v the_o great_a sort_n for_o many_o of_o they_o who_o use_v solemn_a and_o ample_a form_n of_o petition_n common_o include_v all_o their_o thanksgiving_n in_o this_o or_o such_o like_a short_a clause_n through_o jesus_n christ_n to_o who_o with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v all_o honour_n and_o glory_n for_o ever_o amen_n §._o 71._o of_o man_n fail_v in_o the_o extent_n of_o thanksgiving_n but_o to_o let_v pass_v those_o also_o that_o offend_v in_o the_o general_a neglect_n of_o this_o duty_n there_o be_v other_o who_o be_v somewhat_o careful_a of_o the_o duty_n in_o general_a blessing_n fail_v exceed_o in_o the_o extent_n of_o it_o they_o give_v not_o thanks_n for_o all_o thing_n some_o can_v be_v thankful_a for_o temporal_a blessing_n as_o for_o peace_n plenty_n seasonable_a weather_n deliverance_n from_o invasion_n rebellion_n treason_n from_o fire_n plague_n famine_n sickness_n etc._n etc._n but_o it_o seem_v they_o take_v no_o notice_n of_o spiritual_a blessing_n their_o mouth_n be_v very_o seldom_o or_o never_o open_v to_o bless_v god_n for_o they_o they_o show_v themselves_o to_o be_v too_o earthly_a mind_v other_o can_v be_v thankful_a for_o private_a blessing_n bestow_v on_o themselves_o blessing_n or_o on_o their_o family_n and_o friend_n but_o regard_v not_o public_a blessing_n bestow_v on_o church_n or_o commonwealth_n they_o account_v general_a blessing_n no_o blessing_n these_o discover_v too_o much_o self-love_n too_o little_a sense_n of_o the_o common_a good_a other_o who_o it_o may_v be_v will_v be_v thankful_a for_o such_o public_a blessing_n as_o be_v bestow_v on_o that_o church_n and_o commonwealth_n other_o whereof_o they_o themselves_o be_v member_n never_o harken_v after_o nor_o care_n to_o hear_v of_o such_o as_o a●_n bestow_v on_o the_o church_n of_o god_n in_o other_o country_n or_o if_o they_o do_v hear_v of_o they_o very_o little_a if_o at_o all_o be_v they_o affect_v therewith_o much_o less_o be_v they_o affect_v with_o an●_n blessing_n bestow_v on_o private_a christian_n who_o be_v not_o of_o their_o kindred_n alliance_n acquaintance_n with_o the_o like_a this_o also_o show_v that_o they_o have_v no_o fellow-feeling_n of_o the_o good_a of_o the_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n or_o of_o the_o several_a member_n thereof_o which_o may_v make_v they_o fear_v that_o they_o themselves_o be_v scarce_o sound_a member_n of_o that_o body_n if_o they_o be_v there_o will_v assure_o be_v some_o sympathy_n betwixt_o themselves_o and_o other_o member_n some_o mutual_a compassion_n and_o fellow-feeling_n they_o will_v rejoice_v with_o they_o that_o rejoice_v nay_o further_o these_o show_n which_o be_v worse_o what_o little_a zeal_n they_o have_v of_o god_n glory_n for_o to_o take_v notice_n of_o god_n mercy_n on_o other_o as_o well_o as_o on_o ourselves_o to_o talk_v of_o they_o to_o be_v thankful_a for_o they_o do_v much_o amplify_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n work_n it_o make_v they_o to_o be_v more_o famous_a how_o many_o more_o the_o person_n be_v that_o praise_n god_n for_o any_o blessing_n so_o much_o great_a glory_n redound_v to_o god_n name_n therefore_o etc._n david_n oft_o stir_v up_o other_o beside_o himself_o to_o praise_n god_n for_o favour_n bestow_v on_o himself_o further_o adversity_n many_o may_v be_v thankful_a for_o prosperity_n but_o very_o few_o will_v be_v so_o for_o adversity_n to_o be_v thankful_a for_o pain_n sickness_n penury_n ignominy_n imprisonment_n loss_n of_o good_n loss_n of_o friend_n with_o the_o like_a be_v a_o rare_a matter_n these_o thing_n cause_v rather_o in_o most_o man_n murmur_v and_o repine_v against_o god_n for_o few_o consider_v the_o bless_a fruit_n that_o come_v from_o those_o thing_n neither_o think_v that_o they_o can_v be_v any_o blessing_n these_o show_n how_o they_o walk_v by_o sense_n and_o not_o by_o faith_n final_o among_o those_o who_o be_v thankful_a for_o such_o blessing_n as_o they_o enjoy_v come_v how_o few_o lift_v up_o the_o eye_n of_o their_o faith_n further_o than_o the_o eye_n of_o their_o body_n can_v reach_v how_o few_o consider_v those_o good_a thing_n which_o god_n have_v promise_v for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v how_o few_o can_v praise_v god_n for_o any_o good_a thing_n whereof_o they_o have_v not_o the_o present_a fruition_n most_o think_v it_o enough_o to_o praise_n god_n for_o such_o thing_n as_o they_o have_v they_o little_o consider_v that_o the_o matter_n of_o thanksgiving_n extend_v not_o only_o to_o benefit_n receive_v but_o also_o to_o benefit_n promise_v these_o manifest_a little_a credence_n to_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n word_n if_o they_o be_v full_o resolve_v thereof_o they_o will_v account_v god_n word_n to_o be_v very_a deed_n thus_o we_o see_v how_o faulty_a most_o be_v in_o the_o performance_n of_o this_o duty_n and_o how_o short_a they_o come_v of_o this_o general_a extent_n of_o thanksgiving_n which_o be_v without_o restraint_n for_o all_o thing_n let_v we_o examine_v our_o own_o soul_n in_o this_o point_n and_o be_v conscionable_a even_o in_o this_o extent_n because_o this_o four_o branch_n concern_v the_o matter_n of_o thanksgiving_n be_v on_o the_o one_o side_n a_o point_n worthy_a to_o be_v observe_v and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n a_o point_n too_o too_o much_o neglect_v i_o have_v be_v bold_a to_o insist_v the_o long_o upon_o it_o §._o 72._o of_o the_o time_n of_o give_v thank_n the_o last_o branch_n concern_v this_o point_n of_o thanksgiving_n respect_v the_o time_n which_o be_v express_v under_o as_o large_a a_o extent_n as_o the_o former_a branch_n concern_v the_o matter_n that_o be_v for_o 〈◊〉_d all_z thing_n this_o be_v always_o of_o this_o branch_n i_o shall_v not_o need_v now_o in_o particular_a to_o speak_v because_o it_o be_v 117._o afterward_o to_o be_v handle_v in_o the_o general_a doctrine_n of_o prayer_n §._o 73._o direction_n for_o thanksgiving_n before_o i_o conclude_v this_o point_n of_o thanksgiving_n i_o will_v add●_n some_o few_o direction_n which_o be_v well_o observe_v wil●_n be_v very_o helpful_a unto_o we_o in_o the_o performance_n of_o
forcible_a reason_n to_o urge_v they_o to_o pray_v for_o those_o gift_n in_o his_o behalf_n 1._o to_o make_v know_v so_o as_o they_o shall_v thereby_o attain_v to_o knowledge_n 2_o the_o mystery_n a_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o easy_o know_v 3_o of_o the_o gospel_n the_o best_a thing_n that_o can_v be_v learn_v in_o general_n we_o may_v note_v that_o the_o end_n which_o the_o apostle_n aim_v at_o in_o desire_v utterance_n be_v for_o the_o edification_n of_o other_o for_o to_o make_v a_o thing_n know_v be_v to_o instruct_v and_o edify_v other_o here_o observe_v that_o which_o minister_n aim_v at_o infit_v themselves_o to_o the_o ministry_n must_v be_v the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n other_o 31_o they_o may_v and_o must_v desire_v and_o seek_v the_o best_a gift_n yea_o they_o may_v 12._o seek_v to_o excel_v but_o to_o the_o edify_n of_o the_o church_n express_o the_o apostle_n charge_v that_o all_o thing_n be_v do_v to_o edify_v for_o this_o end_n christ_n ordain_v minister_n even_o for_o the_o edify_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n reason_n use_v let_v they_o consider_v this_o who_o end_n be_v only_o their_o maintenance_n who_o study_n hard_o and_o read_v much_o and_o preach_v often_o and_o all_o for_o their_o own_o profit_n and_o preferment_n as_o be_v evident_a by_o their_o manner_n of_o preach_v which_o be_v as_o plausible_a as_o they_o can_v frame_v it_o to_o the_o like_n of_o those_o who_o they_o seek_v to_o please_v and_o by_o who_o they_o hope_v to_o attain_v unto_o their_o end_n whereunto_o when_o they_o have_v once_o attain_v they_o can_v bid_v adieu_o to_o all_o pain_n and_o say_v it_o belong_v to_o they_o which_o follow_v they_o to_o take_v the_o pain_n which_o they_o have_v do_v but_o let_v those_o who_o seek_v to_o approve_v themselves_o to_o the_o high_a master_n follow_v this_o apostle_n 33_o who_o seek_v not_o his_o own_o profit_n but_o the_o profit_n of_o many_o that_o they_o may_v he_o save_v herein_o 3._o he_o follow_v christ_n who_o please_v not_o himself_o §._o 166._o of_o make_v know_v what_o we_o know_v more_o particular_o in_o this_o end_n we_o may_v note_v 1_o the_o action_n to_o make_v know_v 2_o the_o object_n the_o gospel_n 3_o a_o quality_n thereof_o the_o mystery_n the_o first_o show_v that_o know_v it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o a_o minister_n to_o make_v know_v what_o he_o himself_o know_v in_o the_o four_o verse_n of_o the_o three_o chapter_n of_o this_o epistle_n the_o apostle_n imply_v that_o he_o have_v great_a understanding_n in_o the_o mystery_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o gospel_n here_o speak_v of_o here_o we_o see_v that_o his_o desire_n be_v to_o make_v it_o know_v thus_o much_o he_o affirm_v of_o himself_o say_v etc._n when_o it_o please_v god_n to_o reveal_v his_o son_n in_o i_o immediate_o i_o go_v to_o arabia_n namely_o to_o preach_v christ_n and_o christ_n of_o himself_o say_v 15._o all_o thing_n that_o i_o have_v hear_v of_o my_o father_n have_v i_o make_v know_v to_o you_o as_o christ_n put_v this_o in_o practice_v himself_o so_o also_o he_o command_v it_o to_o his_o disciple_n say_v 27._o what_o i_o tell_v you_o in_o darkness_n that_o speak_v you_o in_o the_o light_n and_o what_o you_o hear_v in_o the_o ear_n that_o preach_v you_o upon_o the_o house_n ●ops_v and_o saint_n paul_n to_o timothy_n say_v 2._o what_o thing_n thou_o have_v hear_v of_o i_o the_o same_o deliver_v to_o faithful_a man_n which_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o teach_v other_o also_o all_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o gospel_n reason_n which_o god_n give_v to_o his_o minister_n be_v a_o talon_n give_v they_o to_o occupy_v and_o employ_v by_o make_v know_v what_o they_o know_v they_o improve_v their_o talon_n they_o approve_v themselves_o to_o their_o master_n they_o profit_v their_o brethren_n use_v take_v heed_n o_o minister_n that_o you_o be_v not_o like_o covetous_a worldling_n who_o be_v ever_o gather_v but_o never_o spend_v though_o you_o have_v never_o so_o much_o learning_n if_o you_o make_v it_o not_o know_v it_o be_v but_o as_o the_o talon_n hide_v in_o the_o ground_n now_o remember_v the_o censure_n that_o be_v give_v of_o he_o who_o hide_v his_o talon_n he_o be_v count_v 30._o a_o unprofitable_a servant_n and_o the_o sentence_n which_o pass_v against_o he_o which_o be_v this_o cast_v he_o into_o utter_a darkness_n etc._n etc._n let_v not_o we_o through_o negligence_n conceal_v our_o knowledge_n like_o that_o servant_n nor_o through_o envy_n think_v much_o other_o shall_v partake_v thereof_o like_o jos●ah_n but_o rather_o be_v of_o 29._o moses_n and_o 29._o paul_n mind_n who_o be_v willing_a all_o shall_v know_v as_o much_o as_o themselves_o §._o 167._o of_o preach_v the_o gospel_n the_o second_o point_n show_v that_o the_o gospel_n be_v the_o proper_a object_n of_o preach_v preach_v what_o the_o gospel_n be_v i_o show_v 165._o before_o for_o further_a proof_n of_o the_o doctrine_n note_v the_o commission_n which_o christ_n give_v to_o his_o apostle_n when_o he_o send_v they_o out_o to_o preach_v 15._o go_v and_o preach_v the_o gospel_n in_o this_o respect_n 15._o be_v the_o foot_n of_o preacher_n say_v to_o be_v beautiful_a because_o they_o preach_v the_o gospel_n the_o end_n of_o preach_v be_v the_o salvation_n of_o man_n soul_n reason_n for_o 21._o it_o please_v god_n by_o preach_v to_o save_v those_o that_o believe_v but_o 16._o the_o gospel_n be_v the_o power_n of_o god_n unto_o salvation_n if_o the_o gospel_n then_o be_v not_o the_o object_n of_o preach_v preach_v must_v needs_o fail_v of_o the_o main_a and_o principal_a end_n object_n the_o law_n also_o be_v to_o be_v preach_v answ_n it_o be_v so_o but_o as_o a_o preparative_n unto_o the_o gospel_n in_o which_o respect_n very_o fit_o say_v the_o apostle_n of_o the_o law_n that_o 24._o it_o be_v our_o schoolmaster_n to_o bring_v we_o unto_o christ_n thus_o be_v the_o law_n preach_v for_o the_o gospel_n sake_n so_o as_o it_o remain_v firm_a that_o the_o gospel_n be_v the_o proper_a and_o principal_a object_n of_o preach_v use_v let_v our_o study_n and_o meditation_n be_v exercise_v in_o it_o so_o as_o ourselves_o may_v first_o learn_v it_o know_v it_o believe_v it_o obey_v it_o thus_o shall_v we_o better_o instruct_v other_o therein_o and_o make_v it_o know_v unto_o they_o that_o which_o be_v etc._n before_o deliver_v of_o the_o excellency_n and_o benefit_n of_o the_o gospel_n make_v much_o to_o the_o urge_v and_o press_v of_o this_o point_n §._o 168._o of_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o three_o point_n evident_o declare_v mystery_n that_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o mystery_n very_o oft_o be_v this_o title_n and_o attribute_n use_v in_o other_o place_n it_o be_v call_v 1._o the_o mystery_n of_o god_n 4._o the_o mystery_n of_o christ_n 9_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o will_n of_o god_n 11._o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n 9_o the_o mystery_n of_o faith_n 16._o the_o mystery_n of_o godliness_n for_o god_n be_v the_o author_n christ_n the_o matter_n of_o it_o it_o declare_v the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o direct_v man_n unto_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n faith_n believe_v it_o and_o godliness_n issue_v from_o it_o so_o as_o all_o these_o mystery_n be_v but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o initiari_fw-la even_o the_o gospel_n here_o speak_v which_o be_v fit_o call_v a_o mystery_n for_o a_o mystery_n be_v a_o divine_a secret_a sacra_fw-la now_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o secret_a for_o 9_o none_o of_o the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n know_v it_o it_o contain_v the_o thing_n which_o eye_n have_v not_o see_v nor_o ear_n hear_v neither_o come_v into_o man_n heart_n it_o be_v also_o a_o divine_a secret_n for_o first_o it_o can_v not_o be_v know_v but_o by_o divine_a revelation_n the_o apostle_n express_o say_v that_o 3_o god_n by_o revelation_n show_v this_o mystery_n unto_o he_o and_o that_o 5._o it_o be_v open_v unto_o the_o son_n of_o man_n by_o the_o spirit_n and_o thus_o come_v it_o to_o be_v 10._o make_v know_v by_o the_o church_n unto_o principality_n and_o power_n in_o heavenly_a place_n so_o as_o it_o be_v above_o the_o conceit_n not_o of_o man_n only_o but_o also_o of_o angel_n 2_o be_v open_v it_o seem_v incredible_a unto_o all_o who_o heart_n the_o spirit_n of_o revelation_n do_v not_o persuade_v of_o the_o truth_n thereof_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n pray_v for_o the_o ephesian_n 18_o that_o god_n will_v give_v they_o the_o spirit_n of_o revelation_n in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n that_o the_o eye_n of_o their_o understanding_n may_v belightn_v etc._n etc._n in_o a_o word_n of_o all_o other_o thing_n it_o be_v the_o most_o abstruse_a no_o humane_a invention_n like_o it_o none_o of_o the_o liberal_a art_n and_o
himself_o according_a to_o his_o present_a estate_n again_o condition_n the_o apostle_n imply_v that_o a_o minister_n in_o bond_n must_v have_v respect_n to_o his_o present_a condition_n according_o to_o carry_v himself_o as_o he_o may_v not_o by_o his_o timorousness_n betray_v god_n truth_n so_o neither_o by_o his_o indiscreet_a and_o overgreat_a boldness_n endanger_v the_o same_o this_o do_v christ_n imply_v under_o that_o general_a precept_n 16._o be_v wise_a as_o serpent_n and_o innocent_a as_o dove_n dovelike_a innocency_n will_v keep_v we_o from_o all_o fraudulent_a deal_n so_o as_o we_o shall_v not_o deceive_v our_o master_n and_o abuse_v that_o trust_n which_o he_o put_v in_o us._n serpent-like_a wisdom_n will_v make_v we_o prevent_v many_o mischief_n which_o otherwise_o through_o rashness_n we_o may_v fall_v into_o such_o wisdom_n use_v the_o counsel_n at_o jerusalem_n when_o they_o do_v forbear_v to_o be_v too_o violent_a against_o all_o the_o rite_n of_o moses_n law_n because_o of_o the_o multitude_n of_o jew_n which_o believe_v and_o permit_v 29._o abstinence_n from_o blood_n and_o from_o that_o which_o be_v strangle_v yea_o it_o may_v be_v probable_o collect_v that_o saint_n paul_n 10._o while_o he_o continue_v by_o the_o space_n of_o two_o year_n dispute_v in_o the_o school_n of_o tyranus_n which_o be_v at_o ephesus_n preach_v not_o particular_o against_o diana_n though_o in_o general_n he_o persuade_v the_o people_n that_o 26._o they_o be_v no_o god_n which_o be_v make_v with_o hand_n and_o also_o 8._o persuade_v the_o thing_n which_o concern_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n for_o certain_o there_o will_v have_v be_v many_o tumult_n raise_v against_o he_o &_o the_o church_n as_o etc._n through_o the_o malice_n of_o demetrius_n a_o siluer-smith_n there_o be_v afterward_o if_o by_o name_n he_o have_v inveigh_v against_o diana_n that_o thus_o we_o may_v wisdom_n when_o we_o be_v in_o our_o enemy_n power_n speak_v as_o we_o ought_v to_o speak_v we_o be_v to_o 17._o pray_v for_o the_o spirit_n of_o wisdom_n that_o we_o may_v 10._o discern_v thing_n that_o differ_v and_o that_o we_o may_v right_o judge_v of_o all_o circumstance_n as_o be_v time_n place_n and_o person_n with_o the_o like_a and_o according_o behave_v ourselves_o that_o promise_n which_o christ_n make_v to_o his_o disciple_n say_v 20._o when_o they_o deliver_v you_o up_o it_o shall_v be_v give_v you_o in_o that_o hour_n what_o you_o shall_v speak_v for_o it_o be_v not_o you_o that_o speak_v but_o the_o spirit_n of_o your_o father_n which_o speak_v in_o you_o and_o that_o which_o more_o general_o he_o make_v to_o all_o that_o call_v upon_o he_o aright_o namely_o that_o 13._o god_n will_v give_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o they_o which_o desire_v he_o these_o and_o such_o like_a promise_n may_v assure_v god_n faithful_a ambassador_n that_o the_o lord_n their_o master_n will_v give_v they_o understanding_n how_o to_o deliver_v their_o ambassage_n if_o at_o least_o they_o seek_v to_o 3._o understand_v according_a to_o sobriety_n &_o be_v not_o too_o preposterous_a follow_v the_o apprehension_n of_o their_o own_o conceit_n rather_o than_o the_o direction_n of_o god_n word_n 29._o o_o lord_n grant_v unto_o thy_o servant_n that_o with_o all_o boldness_n they_o may_v speak_v thy_o word_n that_o so_o thy_o name_n may_v be_v the_o more_o glorify_v and_o thy_o church_n edify_v amen_n a_o analysis_n or_o resolution_n of_o a_o declaration_n which_o christ_n make_v of_o the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n record_v matth_n 12._o 31_o 32._o and_o mark_n 3._o 28_o 29._o in_o the_o declaration_n be_v note_v 1_o the_o preface_n wherein_o be_v intimate_v 1_o the_o certainty_n of_o the_o point_n very_o 2_o the_o authority_n of_o he_o that_o deliver_v it_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o 2_o the_o point_n itself_o wherein_o be_v note_v 1_o god_n mercy_n 1_o declare_v by_o forgive_a sin_n 2_o amplify_v by_o the_o sin_n forgive_v set_a forth_o by_o the_o extent_n of_o they_o all_o sin_n wherewith_o soever_o the_o kind_n of_o they_o note_v general_o all_o matter_n of_o sin_n particular_o blasphemee_n the_o person_n 1_o by_o who_o sin_n be_v committee_n man_n son_n of_o i_o amplify_v by_o their_o generality_n whosoever_o 2_o against_o who_o sin_n be_v commit_v the_o son_n of_o men._n 2_o god_n justice_n 1_o declare_v by_o afford_v to_o pardon_v to_o the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 2_o amplify_v by_o set_v forth_o 1_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o sin_n and_o that_o by_o the_o quality_n of_o it_o in_o speak_v against_o blaspheme_v the_o object_n against_o which_o it_o be_v direct_v the_o holy_a ghost_n 2_o the_o issue_n of_o it_o note_v 1_o negative_o and_o that_o simple_o by_o a_o indefinite_a particle_n not._n a_o general_a particle_n never_o comparative_o by_o a_o distinction_n of_o time_n nor_o in_o this_o world_n nor_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v 2_o affirmative_o in_o these_o word_n be_v in_o danger_n of_o eternal_a damnation_n a_o treatise_n of_o the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n §._o 1._o of_o the_o occasion_n that_o christ_n take_v to_o declare_v the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v most_o plain_o and_o full_o lay_v down_o by_o christ_n in_o his_o recrimination_n and_o just_a censure_n of_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisy_n who_o malicious_o slander_v and_o blaspheme_v the_o clear_a evidence_n which_o he_o give_v of_o his_o divine_a power_n in_o dispossess_v a_o devil_n that_o make_v the_o party_n who_o he_o possess_v both_o blind_a and_o dumb_a 22._o their_o blasphemous_a slander_n be_v that_o christ_n cast_v not_o out_o devil_n but_o by_o beelzebub_n the_o prince_n of_o devil_n 24._o this_o slander_n do_v christ_n first_o remove_v by_o show_v that_o it_o be_v neither_o probable_a nor_o possible_a that_o by_o satan_n shall_v satan_n be_v cast_v out_o not_o probable_a either_o in_o the_o thing_n itself_o or_o in_o their_o opinion_n who_o say_v it_o not_o in_o the_o thing_n itself_o 26._o because_o then_o shall_v satan_n be_v divide_v against_o himself_o which_o be_v no_o way_n likely_a for_o so_o shall_v he_o procure_v his_o own_o ruin_n as_o be_v prove_v by_o a_o induction_n of_o three_o particular_n one_o of_o a_o kingdom_n 25._o another_o of_o a_o city_n the_o three_o of_o a_o house_n neither_o of_o which_o if_o it_o be_v divide_v against_o itself_o can_v stand_v so_o nor_o satan_n now_o what_o probability_n be_v there_o that_o satan_n a_o old_a politic_a experience_a prince_n as_o desirous_a as_o any_o other_o to_o maintain_v his_o own_o power_n and_o dominion_n shall_v witting_o seek_v his_o own_o ruin_n and_o overthrow_n nor_o in_o their_o own_o opinion_n be_v that_o which_o they_o say_v of_o christ_n probable_a 27_o because_o they_o otherwise_o think_v of_o other_o man_n that_o cast_v out_o devil_n their_o own_o child_n man_n breed_v and_o bring_v up_o among_o themselves_o that_o cast_v out_o devil_n as_o christ_n do_v be_v not_o by_o they_o thought_n to_o cast_v out_o devil_n by_o the_o power_n of_o satan_n but_o by_o the_o finger_n of_o god_n be_v it_o then_o likely_a that_o in_o their_o conscience_n they_o think_v that_o which_o they_o utter_v with_o their_o tongue_n that_o christ_n cast_v out_o devil_n by_o the_o prince_n of_o devil_n that_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a that_o by_o satan_n satan_n shall_v be_v cast_v out_o 29._o christ_n prove_v by_o that_o superior_a power_n which_o he_o cast_v one_o our_o must_v have_v over_o he_o that_o be_v cast_v out_o he_o must_v be_v able_a first_o to_o bind_v he_o and_o then_o to_o spoil_v his_o house_n but_o satan_n have_v not_o a_o superior_a power_n over_o himself_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o satan_n shall_v be_v strong_a than_o satan_n thus_o our_o lord_n christ_n have_v clean_o quench_v the_o fire_n of_o that_o blasphemous_a slander_n for_o a_o slander_n cast_v on_o he_o that_o be_v innocent_a be_v as_o a_o firebrand_n put_v into_o water_n and_o by_o his_o just_a apology_n stop_v their_o black_a mouth_n so_o as_o they_o have_v not_o to_o oppose_v against_o that_o he_o say_v he_o set_v forth_o the_o high_a pitch_n of_o their_o impiety_n which_o proceed_v to_o plain_a blasphemy_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o from_o thence_o take_v occasion_n to_o declare_v the_o vile_a nature_n and_o fearful_a issue_n of_o that_o sin_n two_o evangelist_n record_v the_o sum_n of_o that_o which_o christ_n deliver_v concern_v the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n i_o will_v therefore_o set_v down_o the_o text_n out_o of_o they_o both_o matth._n 12._o 31_o 32._o wherefore_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o all_o manner_n of_o sin_n and_o blasphemy_n shall_v be_v forgive_v unto_o man_n but_o the_o blasphemy_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v not_o be_v forgive_v unto_o man_n and_o whosoever_o speak_v a_o
word_n against_o the_o son_n of_o man_n it_o shall_v be_v forgive_v he_o but_o whosoever_o speak_v against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n it_o shall_v not_o be_v forgive_v he_o neither_o in_o this_o world_n nor_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v mark_n 3._o 28_o 29._o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o all_o sin_n shall_v be_v forgive_v unto_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o blasphemy_n wherewith_o soever_o they_o shall_v blaspheme_v but_o he_o that_o shall_v blaspheme_v against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v never_o forgiveness_n but_o be_v in_o danger_n of_o eternal_a damnation_n §._o 2._o of_o the_o inference_n of_o christ_n censure_n upon_o their_o slander_n the_o forename_a recrimination_n and_o censure_v which_o christ_n give_v of_o the_o scribe_n and_o parisy_n be_v in_o these_o word_n very_o sharp_a indeed_o it_o be_v but_o most_o just_a the_o reason_n thereof_o be_v intimate_v by_o saint_n matthew_n in_o the_o particle_n of_o inference_n set_v down_o in_o the_o first_o place_n wherefore_o and_o express_v by_o saint_n mark_v 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o reason_n which_o he_o lay_v down_o in_o the_o last_o place_n because_o they_o say_v he_o have_v a_o unclean_a spirit_n very_o brazen-faced_a and_o impudent_a they_o be_v that_o dare_v open_o utter_v such_o a_o vile_a slander_n against_o all_o probability_n and_o possibility_n yea_o against_o their_o own_o judgement_n and_o opinion_n and_o therefore_o christ_n think_v it_o not_o meet_v to_o spare_v they_o any_o whit_n at_o all_o whence_o learn_v that_o as_o sinner_n wax_v bold_a and_o impudent_a in_o sin_n discover_v so_o be_v the_o hainousuesse_n and_o fearful_a issue_n of_o their_o sin_n to_o be_v discover_v 1._o cry_v aloud_o say_v the_o lord_n to_o his_o prophet_n spare_v not_o show_v my_o people_n their_o transgression_n and_o the_o house_n of_o jaakob_n their_o sin_n 13._o rebuke_v they_o sharp_o say_v also_o saint_n paul_n to_o titus_n they_o who_o be_v acquaint_v with_o the_o history_n of_o the_o prophet_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o his_o apostle_n can_v be_v ignorant_a of_o their_o holy_a zeal_n in_o lay_v open_a the_o fearful_a estate_n of_o notorious_a sinner_n even_o to_o their_o very_a face_n thus_o they_o if_o they_o be_v not_o past_a all_o recovery_n they_o may_v be_v bring_v to_o some_o compunction_n and_o remorse_n 37._o as_o the_o jew_n be_v upon_o peter_n lay_v forth_o the_o heinousness_n of_o their_o sin_n in_o crucify_a the_o lord_n jesus_n this_o reason_n do_v saint_n paul_n allege_v where_o he_o advise_v titus_n to_o reprove_v the_o cretan_n sharp_o 13._o for_o he_o add_v this_o clause_n that_o they_o may_v be_v sound_a in_o the_o faith_n if_o those_o sinner_n themselves_o sin_n who_o estate_n be_v so_o lay_v forth_o be_v obstinate_a and_o will_v not_o thereby_o be_v any_o whit_n move_v nor_o bring_v to_o remorse_n but_o rather_o wax_v more_o impudent_a as_o these_o scribe_n and_o pharisy_n like_o the_o jew_n their_o forefather_n 16._o who_o say_v to_o jeremiah_n as_o for_o the_o word_n which_o thou_o have_v speak_v to_o we_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n we_o will_v not_o harken_v unto_o thou_o and_o of_o who_o the_o lord_n say_v to_o ezechiel_n the_o house_n of_o israel_n will_v not_o hearken_v unto_o thou_o 7._o for_o they_o will_v not_o harken_v unto_o i_o for_o all_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n be_v impudent_a and_o hard-hearted_a yet_o may_v other_o be_v keep_v from_o go_v on_o in_o their_o course_n and_o from_o grow_v to_o their_o degree_n of_o impudence_n as_o be_v note_v of_o some_o in_o malachies_n time_n 16._o who_o observe_v the_o stoutness_n of_o their_o fellow_n against_o the_o lord_n fear_v the_o lord_n if_o none_o at_o all_o be_v wrought_v upon_o by_o the_o knowledge_n of_o their_o sin_n justify_v then_o be_v they_o make_v the_o more_o inexcusable_a and_o god_n severe_a proceed_n against_o they_o be_v the_o more_o justify_v thus_o much_o daniel_n declare_v in_o his_o confession_n unto_o god_n 5._o where_o first_o he_o say_v we_o have_v sin_v and_o commit_v iniquity_n and_o have_v do_v wicked_o etc._n etc._n then_o he_o add_v neither_o have_v we_o hearken_v unto_o thy_o servant_n the_o prophet_n 6._o whereby_o he_o imply_v that_o the_o prophet_n declare_v their_o sin_n and_o denounce_v god_n judgement_n against_o they_o and_o thereupon_o he_o infer_v 7._o o_o lord_n righteousness_n belong_v unto_o thou_o but_o unto_o we_o confusion_n of_o face_n use_v upon_o these_o and_o other_o like_a proof_n and_o reason_n minister_n must_v learn_v as_o they_o see_v just_a occasion_n to_o put_v in_o practice_v the_o forename_a doctrine_n and_o by_o their_o holy_a zeal_n in_o lay_v forth_o sin_n and_o the_o issue_n thereof_o to_o show_v their_o desire_n of_o reclaim_v sinner_n of_o stay_v the_o infection_n and_o contagion_n of_o sin_n and_o of_o justify_v god_n proceed_v against_o sinner_n §._o 3._o of_o the_o resolution_n and_o several_a head_n of_o the_o text_n to_o pass_v from_o the_o occasion_n and_o inference_n of_o christ_n censure_n note_v further_o the_o manner_n matter_n thereof_o christ_n manner_n of_o set_v it_o forth_o be_v with_o great_a ardency_n and_o authority_n note_v in_o the_o preface_n prefix_v before_o his_o censure_n very_o isaiah_n unto_o you_o the_o particle_n of_o asseveration_n very_o declare_v his_o ardency_n his_o aver_n of_o it_o in_o his_o own_o name_n i_o say_v show_v his_o authority_n the_o matter_n of_o christ_n censure_n be_v 1_o general_o propound_v 2_o particular_o apply_v in_o the_o general_a proposition_n be_v note_v 1_o the_o nature_n 2_o the_o issue_n of_o the_o sin_n censure_v the_o nature_n thereof_o be_v declare_v by_o the_o person_n against_o who_o it_o be_v in_o special_a direct_v namely_o against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o issue_n of_o it_o be_v that_o it_o shall_v never_o be_v forgive_v both_o these_o be_v amplify_v by_o compare_v they_o with_o the_o nature_n and_o issue_n of_o other_o sin_n other_o sin_n be_v commit_v against_o the_o son_n of_o man._n this_o against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n other_o sin_n shall_v be_v forgive_v this_o shall_v never_o be_v forgive_v in_o this_o comparison_n be_v set_v forth_o a_o lively_a representation_n of_o god_n mercy_n and_o justice_n of_o his_o mercy_n in_o forgive_a every_o sin_n commit_v against_o the_o son_n of_o man._n of_o his_o justice_n in_o vouchsafe_v no_o pardon_n to_o the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n §._o 4._o of_o the_o truth_n and_o weight_n of_o the_o point_n here_o deliver_v the_o first_o point_n to_o be_v note_v be_v christ_n preface_n whereby_o he_o show_v that_o what_o he_o deliver_v concern_v this_o point_n be_v both_o a_o certain_a and_o infallible_a truth_n and_o also_o a_o point_n of_o weight_n and_o moment_n christ_n aver_v it_o upon_o his_o authority_n and_o credit_n i_o say_v say_v he_o i_o that_o be_o a_o faithful_a and_o true_a witness_n i_o who_o can_v lie_v i_o who_o be_o the_o very_a truth_n i_o say_v so_o as_o of_o what_o authority_n our_o lord_n the_o eternal_a son_n of_o god_n be_v this_o which_o he_o have_v here_o deliver_v be_v also_o namely_o true_a 31._o certain_a infallible_a unchangeable_a heaven_n and_o earth_n shall_v pass_v away_o but_o his_o word_n shall_v not_o pass_v away_o with_o this_o authority_n do_v christ_n 44._o oft_o ratify_v and_o confirm_v that_o exposition_n which_o he_o give_v of_o the_o moral_a law_n and_o oppose_v it_o to_o the_o light_a credit_n of_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n of_o the_o jew_n say_v you_o have_v hear_v it_o say_v of_o old_a etc._n etc._n but_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o etc._n etc._n so_o as_o his_o authority_n be_v more_o than_o any_o other_o can_v be_v for_o christ_n be_v the_o only_a true_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n as_o he_o himself_o testify_v of_o himself_o 8._o say_v one_o be_v your_o doctor_n even_o christ_n he_o have_v power_n in_o his_o own_o name_n by_o his_o own_o authority_n to_o deliver_v any_o thing_n to_o his_o church_n which_o power_n be_v intimate_v under_o this_o imperial_a phrase_n i_o say_v and_o herein_o his_o manner_n of_o teach_v be_v different_a from_o all_o other_o for_o the_o usual_a phrase_n of_o the_o prophet_n be_v 1._o thus_o say_v the_o lord_n 1._o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o burden_n of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n with_o the_o like_a to_o make_v doubt_n of_o any_o thing_n which_o christ_n say_v be_v to_o call_v his_o authority_n into_o question_n if_o therefore_o the_o word_n speak_v by_o the_o prophet_n be_v steadfast_a how_o much_o more_o steadfast_a be_v the_o word_n speak_v by_o the_o lord_n himself_o christ_n jesus_n the_o particle_n set_v by_o saint_n mark_v before_o the_o clause_n of_o christ_n authority_n be_v in_o the_o greek_a amen_o and_o in_o the_o hebrew_n signify_v truth_n and_o so_o not_o unfit_o translate_v very_o it_o be_v a_o note_n of_o a_o earnest_n
be_v utter_v against_o the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v to_o justify_v god_n severity_n against_o the_o sin_n and_o blasphemy_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o which_o purpose_n without_o question_n christ_n have_v here_o so_o magnify_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n as_o the_o like_a place_n be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v throughout_o the_o whole_a scripture_n wherefore_o have_v speak_v of_o god_n mercy_n in_o pardon_v every_o sin_n but_o one_o let_v we_o consider_v his_o justice_n in_o afford_v to_o pardon_v to_o that_o one_o sin_n which_o be_v the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n §._o 14._o of_o abuse_v god_n mercy_n in_o that_o christ_n infer_v the_o severity_n of_o god_n justice_n upon_o the_o riches_n of_o his_o mercy_n and_o after_o he_o have_v deliver_v what_o he_o can_v of_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n add_v asleep_o but_o every_o sin_n shall_v be_v forgive_v but_o the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v never_o be_v forgive_v he_o give_v we_o to_o undestand_v that_o god_n mercy_n and_o long-suffering_a may_v be_v so_o far_o abuse_v justice_n as_o nothing_o but_o extremity_n of_o justice_n can_v be_v look_v for_o thus_o much_o imply_v the_o apostle_n where_o he_o say_v it_o be_v impossible_a that_o such_o and_o such_o shall_v be_v renew_v and_o again_o there_o remain_v no_o more_o sacrifice_n for_o sin_n 27._o but_o a_o fearful_a look_v for_o of_o judgement_n 24_o the_o phrase_n of_o god_n walk_v stubborne_o against_o they_o that_o walk_v stubborne_o against_o he_o 26._o and_o show_v himself_o froward_a with_o the_o froward_a 14._o and_o swear_v that_o the_o iniquity_n of_o man_n shall_v not_o be_v purge_v with_o sacrifice_n nor_o offer_v for_o ever_o with_o the_o like_a do_v also_o prove_v as_o much_o god_n mercy_n will_v be_v notorious_o abuse_v reason_n if_o at_o some_o time_n and_o in_o some_o case_n the_o very_a extremity_n of_o justice_n shall_v not_o be_v execute_v it_o stand_v much_o with_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n to_o show_v himself_o sometime_o a_o god_n of_o vengeance_n and_o a_o consume_a fire_n use_v take_v we_o heed_n therefore_o how_o we_o go_v too_o far_o in_o abuse_v god_n lenity_n and_o patience_n lest_o we_o deprive_v ourselves_o of_o all_o the_o fruit_n and_o benefit_n thereof_o and_o instead_o of_o be_v the_o principal_a object_n of_o god_n mercy_n we_o make_v ourselves_o the_o principal_a object_n of_o his_o mercy_n a_o man_n may_v so_o far_o proceed_v in_o sin_v against_o the_o son_n of_o man_n as_o by_o degree_n fall_v into_o the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o fearfulness_n of_o which_o estate_n follow_v now_o to_o be_v declare_v §._o 15._o of_o the_o object_n of_o the_o unpardonable_a sin_n the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o handle_v the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n we_o be_v to_o consider_v 1_o the_o nature_n 2_o the_o issue_n thereof_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o fin_n be_v set_v forth_o under_o the_o name_n give_v to_o it_o it_o be_v by_o 〈◊〉_d saint_n matthew_n term_v the_o blasphemy_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o a_o speak_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o saint_n mark_v 〈◊〉_d a_o blaspheme_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o all_o which_o phrase_n be_v note_v forth_o both_o the_o object_n and_o the_o quality_n of_o that_o sin_n the_o object_n against_o which_o in_o special_a this_o sin_n be_v direct_v and_o commit_v be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o in_o this_o respect_n saint_n matthew_n call_v it_o the_o blasphemy_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n not_o as_o if_o it_o be_v in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v blasphemy_n to_o think_v but_o because_o as_o the_o other_o phrase_n do_v express_o declare_v it_o be_v against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o this_o sense_n this_o kind_n of_o phrase_n be_v oft_o use_v for_o where_o it_o say_v that_o christ_n give_v his_o disciple_n power_n against_o unclean_a spirit_n as_o it_o be_v well_o translate_v according_a to_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o phrase_n word_n for_o word_n it_o be_v in_o the_o original_a power_n of_o unclean_a spirit_n 1._o this_o i_o have_v the_o rather_o note_v 〈◊〉_d to_o mollify_v the_o phrase_n of_o some_o who_o speak_v preach_v and_o write_v of_o this_o sin_n style_v it_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o speech_n be_v well_o take_v the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v conceive_v to_o be_v not_o the_o subject_n but_o the_o object_n thereof_o it_o may_v safe_o be_v use_v now_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v make_v the_o object_n of_o this_o sin_n not_o in_o regard_n of_o his_o essence_n or_o person_n but_o in_o regard_n of_o his_o office_n and_o operation_n the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o regard_n of_o his_o essence_n be_v all_o one_o with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n all_o the_o three_o person_n be_v one_o in_o nature_n and_o essence_n all_o one_o god_n in_o which_o respect_n a_o sin_n commit_v against_o any_o one_o be_v commit_v against_o every_o one_o of_o the_o three_o person_n the_o holy_a ghost_n also_o in_o regard_n of_o his_o person_n be_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n proceedigg_v from_o they_o both_o and_o no_o way_n great_a than_o the_o father_n or_o the_o son_n they_o be_v all_o in_o dignity_n coequal_a so_o as_o in_o this_o respect_n a_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n can_v be_v great_a than_o against_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n but_o there_o be_v a_o office_n and_o operation_n peculiarly_a in_o scripture_n attribute_v to_o each_o person_n the_o peculiar_a office_n and_o operation_n attribute_v to_o the_o spirit_n be_v 1_o to_o enlighten_v man_n mind_n with_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o to_o reveal_v unto_o they_o the_o good_a will_n of_o god_n and_o way_n to_o happiness_n in_o which_o respect_n he_o be_v call_v the_o spirit_n of_o revelation_n 17._o 2_o to_o persuade_v their_o heart_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v reveal_v to_o their_o understanding_n by_o virtue_n whereof_o 5._o man_n be_v say_v to_o taste_v of_o the_o good_a word_n of_o god_n after_o that_o they_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 3_o to_o move_v they_o to_o acknowledge_v and_o profess_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v imply_v by_o the_o apostle_n under_o this_o phrase_n of_o receive_v the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n 26._o there_o be_v also_o many_o other_o work_v of_o the_o spirit_n but_o these_o be_v the_o most_o pertinent_a unto_o our_o purpose_n and_o will_v give_v light_n unto_o all_o the_o rest_n the_o sin_n here_o note_v to_o be_v commit_v against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v commit_v against_o he_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o forename_a operation_n of_o the_o spirit_n so_o as_o it_o be_v against_o that_o truth_n of_o god_n which_o the_o spirit_n have_v reveal_v to_o a_o man_n and_o evict_v and_o persuade_v his_o heart_n of_o the_o certainty_n thereof_o so_o as_o in_o his_o heart_n he_o can_v but_o acknowledge_v that_o it_o be_v a_o evident_a and_o undeniable_a truth_n and_o be_v oft_o move_v with_o his_o mouth_n to_o profess_v as_o much_o §._o 16._o of_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o quality_n or_o effect_n of_o this_o sin_n for_o the_o sin_n itself_o be_v seat_v principal_o in_o the_o heart_n be_v speak_v against_o and_o blasphemy_n this_o latter_a word_n expound_v the_o former_a for_o it_o be_v not_o every_o kind_n of_o speak_v against_o but_o a_o ignominious_a approbrious_a dispitefull_a speak_v against_o which_o be_v blasphemy_n for_o blasphemy_n be_v here_o take_v in_o the_o uttermost_a extent_n thereof_o and_o that_o both_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o matter_n which_o be_v to_o deny_v the_o evidence_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o also_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o manner_n which_o be_v to_o do_v it_o with_o disgraceful_a and_o despiteful_a speech_n to_o the_o open_a dishonour_n of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o gospel_n and_o of_o the_o spirit_n which_o have_v give_v undoubted_a evidence_n of_o the_o power_n of_o god_n as_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisy_n who_o do_v not_o only_o deny_v that_o christ_n cast_v out_o devil_n by_o the_o finger_n and_o power_n of_o god_n but_o also_o most_o reproachful_o and_o slanderous_o say_v 24._o this_o fellow_n do_v not_o cast_v out_o devil_n but_o by_o beel-zebub_a the_o prince_n of_o devil_n and_o again_o 30._o he_o have_v a_o unclean_a spirit_n §._o 17._o of_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o word_n and_o phrase_n whereby_o christ_n set_v forth_o the_o nature_n of_o this_o sin_n be_v expound_v we_o may_v out_o of_o they_o gather_v this_o definition_n the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v a_o despiteful_a reject_v of_o the_o gospel_n after_o that_o the_o spirit_n have_v supernatural_o persuade_v a_o man_n heart_n of_o the_o
truth_n and_o benefit_n thereof_o the_o genus_fw-la general_a matter_n of_o this_o definition_n be_v a_o reject_v of_o the_o gospel_n the_o forma_fw-la particular_a form_n whereby_o this_o sin_n be_v distinguish_v from_o other_o sin_n be_v in_o the_o other_o word_n for_o the_o matter_n the_o gospel_n be_v it_o 4._o against_o which_o this_o sin_n in_o particular_a be_v direct_v and_o not_o every_o part_n of_o god_n word_n by_o the_o gospel_n i_o mean_v that_o part_n of_o god_n word_n which_o god_n have_v reveal_v for_o man_n salvation_n even_o after_o his_o fall_n and_o in_o that_o respect_n common_o call_v the_o glad_a tiding_n of_o salvation_n so_o as_o the_o very_a object_n matter_n whereabout_o this_o sin_n be_v occupy_v do_v in_o part_n discover_v the_o heinousness_n thereof_o and_o declare_v a_o reason_n why_o it_o be_v not_o pardon_v to_o oppose_v against_o any_o part_n of_o god_n truth_n 27._o be_v a_o monstrous_a and_o heinous_a sin_n for_o a_o especial_a part_n of_o god_n honour_n consist_v in_o his_o truth_n which_o be_v as_o dear_a and_o precious_a to_o he_o as_o any_o thing_n can_v be_v to_o gainsay_v it_o be_v to_o deny_v he_o to_o be_v god_n 5._o for_o he_o be_v style_v the_o lord_n god_n of_o truth_n but_o to_o gainsay_v the_o gospel_n that_o part_n of_o god_n truth_n wherein_o jesus_n who_o be_v send_v to_o save_v his_o people_n from_o their_o sin_n 21._o wherein_o the_o riches_n of_o god_n mercy_n &_o wherein_o the_o 〈◊〉_d peculiar_a love_n of_o god_n to_o man_n be_v reveal_v and_o that_o for_o man_n good_a even_o for_o his_o eternal_a salvation_n be_v more_o than_o monstrous_a for_o this_o be_v not_o only_o a_o deny_v of_o god_n truth_n but_o of_o his_o mercy_n also_o yea_o if_o we_o well_o consider_v the_o extent_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o the_o wisdom_n power_n justice_n and_o all_o other_o property_n of_o god_n it_o add_v unto_o other_o sin_n to_o make_v up_o the_o heap_n of_o they_o ingratitude_n it_o take_v away_o the_o mean_n of_o pardon_n and_o life_n for_o in_o the_o gospel_n only_o in_o the_o gospel_n be_v pardon_v offer_v and_o life_n to_o be_v find_v without_o it_o be_v nothing_o but_o death_n and_o damnation_n when_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o receive_v what_o hope_n can_v there_o be_v of_o pardon_n this_o be_v it_o that_o bring_v god_n who_o by_o a_o solemn_a oath_n have_v protest_v 11._o that_o he_o desire_v not_o the_o death_n of_o the_o wicked_a but_o that_o the_o wicked_a shall_v turn_v from_o his_o way_n and_o live_v to_o complain_v and_o say_v what_o can_v i_o have_v do_v any_o more_o 4._o that_o i_o have_v not_o do_v if_o not_o to_o receive_v the_o gospel_n be_v a_o deadly_a and_o damnable_a sin_n what_o be_v to_o reject_v it_o to_o reject_v a_o thing_n be_v more_o than_o not_o to_o receive_v it_o it_o be_v to_o put_v it_o away_o as_o the_o jew_n who_o in_o that_o respect_n be_v say_v to_o judge_v themselves_o unworthy_a of_o everlasting_a life_n simile_n it_o be_v as_o if_o traitor_n and_o rebel_n be_v rise_v up_o against_o their_o sovereign_n and_o he_o offer_v pardon_n unto_o they_o if_o they_o will_v lay_v down_o their_o weapon_n and_o turn_v to_o be_v loyal_a subject_n they_o shall_v reject_v his_o gracious_a offer_n and_o say_v they_o will_v none_o of_o his_o favour_n they_o care_v not_o for_o pardon_v they_o have_v rather_o be_v hang_v draw_v and_o quarter_v then_o be_v behold_v to_o he_o for_o favour_n and_o pardon_n do_v not_o this_o reject_v of_o favour_n much_o aggravate_v the_o crime_n yea_o be_v not_o this_o a_o more_o heinous_a crime_n than_o the_o treason_n and_o rebellion_n itself_o hereinto_o all_o that_o commit_v the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v fall_v but_o yet_o all_o that_o fall_v thereinto_o do_v not_o commit_v that_o sin_n for_o as_o none_o that_o perish_v in_o their_o sin_n receive_v the_o gospel_n so_o all_o incredulous_a person_n which_o live_v under_o the_o gospel_n and_o ministry_n thereof_o whereby_o pardon_n be_v proclaim_v and_o offer_v unto_o they_o do_v refuse_v and_o reject_v it_o so_o as_o this_o part_n of_o the_o general_a matter_n of_o this_o sin_n be_v common_a to_o all_o that_o at_o least_o live_v under_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o gospel_n believe_v not_o in_o the_o definition_n of_o this_o sin_n we_o further_o add_v this_o word_n despiteful_a which_o also_o appertain_v to_o the_o general_a matter_n thereof_o to_o reject_v the_o gospel_n despiteful_o do_v make_v the_o matter_n much_o more_o desperate_a for_o it_o imply_v a_o inbred_a hatred_n against_o the_o gospel_n itself_o the_o word_n of_o salvation_n whence_o proceed_v open_a blasphemy_n against_o god_n and_o his_o word_n and_o fierce_a and_o cruel_a persecute_v of_o the_o preacher_n and_o professor_n of_o the_o gospel_n this_o despitefulnesse_n add_v to_o reject_v of_o the_o gospel_n bring_v a_o man_n into_o a_o most_o fearful_a and_o desperate_a estate_n yet_o all_o that_o ascend_v to_o this_o high_a pitch_n of_o impiety_n do_v not_o simple_o therein_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o all_o this_o may_v be_v do_v on_o ignorance_n instance_n paul_n example_n he_o be_v so_o zealous_a of_o the_o tradition_n which_o the_o jew_n receive_v from_o their_o elder_n as_o he_o hate_v the_o gospel_n which_o he_o deem_v to_o be_v contrary_a thereunto_o 9_o in_o which_o respect_n he_o think_v that_o he_o ought_v to_o do_v many_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n 21_o and_o so_o he_o do_v for_o out_o of_o his_o inward_a hatred_n he_o breathe_v out_o threaten_n and_o slaughter_n against_o the_o disciple_n of_o the_o lord_n he_o do_v much_o evil_n to_o the_o saint_n he_o destroy_v they_o that_o call_v on_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n he_o compel_v many_o to_o blaspheme_v 11._o and_o wax_v mad_a against_o the_o saint_n yea_o he_o himself_o be_v a_o blasphemer_n 13._o but_o all_o these_o he_o do_v ignorant_o for_o a_o man_n may_v hate_v and_o blaspheme_v that_o which_o he_o know_v not_o great_a be_v that_o despite_n which_o many_o of_o the_o jew_n show_v against_o christ_n and_o against_o stephen_n 55_o they_o be_v cut_v to_o the_o heart_n and_o gnash_v at_o stephen_n with_o their_o tooth_n 34._o yet_o both_o christ_n and_o stephen_n pray_v for_o they_o 60._o which_o they_o will_v not_o have_v do_v 16._o if_o they_o have_v sin_v the_o sin_n unto_o death_n because_o it_o be_v forbid_v so_o to_o do_v thus_o much_o of_o the_o general_a matter_n of_o the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n wherein_o other_o sin_n may_v agree_v with_o it_o the_o particular_a form_n whereby_o it_o be_v distinguish_v from_o all_o other_o sin_n be_v in_o these_o word_n after_o that_o the_o spirit_n have_v supernatural_o persuade_v a_o man_n heart_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o benefit_n thereof_o out_o of_o which_o i_o gather_v these_o conclusion_n concern_v the_o person_n that_o commit_v this_o sin_n 1_o they_o must_v have_v knowledge_n of_o the_o gospel_n their_o judgement_n must_v be_v evict_v of_o that_o truth_n which_o they_o oppose_v whereby_o they_o come_v to_o sin_n against_o their_o own_o knowledge_n and_o judgement_n 2_o this_o knowledge_n must_v not_o only_o swim_v in_o the_o brain_n but_o also_o work_v upon_o their_o will_n and_o dive_v into_o their_o heart_n so_o as_o their_o will_n give_v consent_n and_o their_o heart_n assent_v to_o what_o their_o judgement_n coneive_v to_o be_v true_a there_o must_v be_v a_o persuasion_n as_o well_o as_o knowledge_n whereby_o they_o come_v to_o sin_n against_o conscience_n that_o judge_n which_o god_n have_v place_v in_o man_n soul_n to_o accuse_v or_o excuse_v they_o 3_o this_o knowledge_n and_o persuasion_n must_v be_v wrought_v not_o only_o by_o evidence_n of_o undeniable_a argument_n for_o so_o a_o heathen_a man_n may_v be_v evict_v and_o persuade_v but_o also_o by_o a_o supernatural_a and_o inward_a work_n of_o god_n spirit_n whereby_o they_o be_v in_o their_o very_a soul_n persuade_v that_o they_o gainsay_v the_o undoubted_a word_n of_o god_n and_o so_o sin_n against_o the_o work_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o they_o 4_o this_o inward_a supernatural_a persuasion_n must_v be_v of_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o word_n as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o truth_n thereof_o that_o the_o word_n which_o they_o despiteful_o gainsay_v be_v the_o word_n of_o salvation_n which_o whosoever_o believe_v shall_v not_o perish_v but_o have_v life_n everlasting_a and_o the_o only_a mean_n of_o salvation_n whosoever_o reject_v it_o shall_v be_v damn_v thus_o in_o sin_v against_o the_o forename_a work_n of_o the_o spirit_n they_o sin_n against_o their_o own_o soul_n and_o bring_v swift_a damnation_n upon_o themselves_o brief_o to_o sum_n up_o all_o that_o have_v be_v deliver_v of_o the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n it_o consist_v of_o these_o degree_n 1_o
a_o reject_v of_o the_o gospel_n 29._o which_o the_o apostle_n in_o his_o description_n of_o this_o sin_n evident_o note_v for_o first_o he_o make_v a_o opposition_n betwixt_o despiser_n of_o the_o law_n and_o despiser_n of_o that_o against_o which_o they_o sin_n that_o fall_v into_o this_o unpardonable_a sin_n now_o what_o can_v that_o which_o be_v oppose_v to_o the_o law_n be_v 29._o but_o the_o gospel_n again_o his_o description_n of_o that_o which_o be_v despise_v can_v agree_v to_o nothing_o so_o well_o as_o to_o the_o gospel_n 2_o a_o despiteful_a reject_v thereof_o ibid._n which_o the_o same_o apostle_n note_v under_o these_o phrase_n a_o tread_v under_o foot_n count_v a_o unholy_a thing_n despiting_a under_o this_o clause_n be_v comprise_v malice_n &_o hatred_n of_o hart_n blasphemy_n of_o the_o tongue_n and_o persecution_n in_o all_o which_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisy_n manifest_v great_a despite_n against_o christ_n so_o have_v all_o other_o that_o ever_o commit_v this_o sin_n in_o this_o respect_n the_o apostle_n call_v they_o adversary_n 27._o 3_o a_o despiteful_a reject_v of_o the_o gospel_n against_o knowledge_n which_o the_o apostle_n express_o note_v in_o this_o phrase_n after_o we_o have_v receive_v the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n 26._o 4_o a_o despiteful_a reject_v of_o the_o gospel_n against_o conscience_n which_o the_o apostle_n imply_v under_o this_o word_n wilful_o 5_o a_o wilful_a gainsay_n and_o oppose_v against_o the_o inward_a operation_n and_o supernatural_a revelation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v note_v by_o the_o apostle_n under_o this_o phrase_n have_v do_v despite_n unto_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n 29._o 6_o a_o despiting_a of_o the_o spirit_n in_o such_o thing_n as_o he_o reveal_v to_o they_o for_o their_o own_o good_a even_o the_o salvation_n of_o their_o soul_n this_o be_v comprise_v under_o those_o phrase_n of_o taste_v the_o heavenly_a gift_n 5._o the_o good_a word_n of_o god_n and_o power_n of_o the_o world_n to_o come_v which_o they_o do_v as_o it_o be_v spit_v out_o again_o §._o 18._o of_o the_o difference_n betwixt_o the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o other_o sin_n by_o the_o forename_a definition_n may_v the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v distinguish_v from_o many_o other_o sin_n which_o come_v near_o unto_o it_o as_o 1_o from_o many_o sin_n against_o knowledge_n yea_o and_o against_o conscience_n also_o for_o they_o may_v be_v without_o malice_n of_o heart_n which_o this_o can_v be_v the_o elect_n may_v fall_v into_o they_o but_o not_o into_o this_o 4._o david_n and_o peter_n sin_v both_o against_o knowledge_n 69._o and_o also_o against_o conscience_n 2_o from_o many_o sin_n commit_v on_o malice_n against_o christ_n and_o his_o gospel_n 13._o which_o may_v be_v do_v on_o ignorance_n 3_o from_o blasphemy_n and_o persecution_n which_o may_v be_v do_v also_o ibid._n on_o ignorance_n 10_o or_o in_o passion_n 4_o from_o denial_n of_o christ_n which_o may_v be_v do_v on_o fear_n instance_n peter_n example_n or_o other_o like_a temptation_n 69._o it_o be_v a_o ancient_a heresy_n of_o the_o novatian_n to_o deny_v repentance_n and_o pardon_n to_o such_o as_o have_v once_o deny_v christ_n quaest_n 5_o from_o apostasy_n from_o the_o faith_n and_o profession_n of_o religion_n which_o also_o may_v be_v do_v not_o on_o malice_n but_o through_o the_o violence_n of_o some_o temptation_n it_o be_v note_v of_o solomon_n 6._o that_o he_o continue_v not_o to_o follow_v the_o lord_n but_o turn_v after_o other_o god_n through_o the_o persuasion_n of_o his_o wife_n when_o a_o kingdom_n change_v religion_n as_o england_n in_o queen_n mary_n day_n many_o prove_v apostate_n and_o fall_v away_o from_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o profess_v idolatry_n for_o fear_n of_o persecution_n or_o for_o too_o much_o love_n of_o this_o world_n to_o hold_v their_o place_n and_o office_n their_o honour_n and_o dignity_n their_o house_n and_o land_n or_o else_o on_o a_o infirm_a and_o weak_a persuasion_n that_o they_o can_v keep_v their_o heart_n pure_a and_o their_o faith_n sound_n though_o with_o their_o body_n they_o outward_o subject_v themselves_o to_o idolatry_n the_o levite_n which_o in_o the_o captivite_fw-la fall_v away_o etc._n though_o they_o be_v bar_v from_o meddle_v with_o the_o holy_a thing_n yet_o they_o be_v admit_v to_o do_v other_o service_n in_o the_o temple_n whereby_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o they_o fall_v not_o into_o this_o unpardonable_a sin_n 6_o from_o presumption_n and_o sin_v with_o a_o high_a hand_n as_o manasseh_n do_v 13._o 7_o from_o hardness_n of_o heart_n 18_o from_o impudency_n and_o commit_v sin_n with_o greediness_n for_o so_o do_v the_o gentile_n which_o have_v not_o the_o gospel_n supernatural_o reveal_v unto_o they_o 8_o from_o infidelity_n and_o impenitency_n yea_o from_o final_a infidelity_n and_o impenitency_n whereinto_o all_o the_o reprobate_a fall_n if_o final_a impenitency_n shall_v be_v the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o some_o do_v take_v it_o then_o shall_v every_o one_o that_o be_v damn_v sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n yea_o than_o can_v not_o this_o sin_n be_v commit_v till_o death_n and_o then_o in_o vain_a shall_v the_o caveat_n of_o saint_n john_n be_v 16._o concern_v not_o pray_v for_o they_o §._o 19_o of_o the_o person_n that_o may_v fall_v into_o the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v see_v what_o the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v no_o for_o application_n of_o the_o point_n to_o the_o party_n with_o who_o christ_n have_v to_o do_v we_o will_v in_o the_o next_o place_n discuss_v whether_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisy_n that_o slander_v christ_n commit_v this_o sin_n or_o no_o many_o say_v they_o do_v not_o commit_v this_o sin_n and_o to_o prove_v their_o assertion_n they_o use_v these_o two_o argument_n 1_o they_o never_o profess_v christ_n 2_o christ_n pray_v for_o they_o 34._o to_o the_o first_o i_o answer_v that_o two_o sort_n of_o people_n may_v fall_v into_o this_o sin_n namely_o they_o who_o profess_v christ_n and_o his_o gospel_n and_o they_o who_o never_o profess_v it_o professor_n that_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n apostate_n be_v call_v apostate_n that_o be_v departer_n away_o namely_o from_o the_o faith_n or_o from_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o the_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d which_o according_a to_o the_o notation_n of_o it_o signify_v apostasy_n be_v translate_v a_o depart_a and_o a_o fall_v away_o not_o that_o all_o who_o depart_v away_o and_o in_o that_o general_a sense_n be_v call_v apostate_n do_v commit_v this_o sin_n as_o be_v note_v 18._o before_o but_o because_o they_o that_o fall_v into_o this_o sin_n be_v most_o notorious_a apostate_n deny_v the_o truth_n not_o in_o tongue_n only_o but_o in_o heart_n also_o not_o through_o fear_n but_o in_o malice_n utter_o renounce_v and_o bid_v defiance_n to_o the_o faith_n not_o content_v themselves_o to_o deny_v it_o but_o show_v themselves_o deadly_a enemy_n against_o it_o and_o persecute_v all_o that_o be_v friend_n unto_o it_o have_v in_o that_o respect_n a_o very_a diabolical_a property_n not_o endure_v that_o any_o shall_v reap_v benefit_n by_o that_o which_o they_o have_v reject_v such_o a_o apostate_n be_v alexander_n the_o coppersmith_n and_o julian._n 14._o they_o who_o never_o profess_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n ghost_n may_v also_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o they_o do_v to_o who_o the_o spirit_n have_v so_o clear_o and_o supernatural_o reveal_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o their_o heart_n and_o conscience_n do_v inward_o tell_v they_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o make_v profession_n thereof_o yet_o their_o malice_n against_o it_o not_o only_o keep_v they_o from_o profess_v it_o but_o also_o make_v they_o to_o revile_v it_o 〈◊〉_d and_o to_o persecute_v the_o professor_n of_o it_o the_o apostle_n say_v of_o such_o a_o one_o that_o he_o be_v condemn_v of_o himself_o such_o be_v the_o scribe_n and_o pharisy_n which_o blaspheme_v christ_n and_o such_o be_v many_o of_o the_o learneder_n papist_n the_o difference_n betwixt_o these_o two_o sort_n be_v that_o the_o former_a have_v go_v a_o step_n further_o in_o show_n of_o goodness_n but_o thereby_o have_v make_v their_o fall_n the_o more_o offensive_a and_o their_o sin_n the_o great_a in_o that_o to_o the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n they_o have_v add_v apostasy_n as_o some_o add_v oppression_n murder_n and_o the_o like_a to_o the_o second_o argument_n 34._o to_o prove_v that_o the_o forename_a scribe_n and_o pharisy_n sin_v not_o against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n take_v from_o christ_n prayer_n i_o answer_v that_o christ_n pray_v not_o in_o particular_a for_o these_o but_o for_o such_o as_o be_v indeed_o in_o the_o outward_a act_n associate_n but_o not_o of_o so_o evil_a
a_o disposition_n as_o they_o as_o among_o papist_n blind_a zeal_n move_v many_o to_o do_v that_o which_o deadly_a malice_n move_v other_o to_o do_v i_o doubt_v not_o but_o we_o may_v ghost_n according_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o matter_n conclude_v that_o the_o forename_a scribe_n and_o pharisy_n sin_v against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o 1_o the_o gospel_n be_v preach_v to_o they_o by_o john_n the_o baptist_n christ_n and_o his_o disciple_n yet_o they_o receive_v it_o not_o but_o refuse_v and_o reject_v it_o 2_o they_o do_v it_o despiteful_o as_o their_o carriage_n show_v 3_o they_o blaspheme_v christ_n as_o we_o have_v hear_v before_o and_o they_o persecute_v he_o and_o his_o disciple_n 4_o they_o do_v all_o this_o against_o knowledge_n and_o against_o conscience_n 27._o as_o the_o instance_n which_o christ_n give_v of_o their_o justify_n that_o in_o their_o child_n which_o they_o condemn_v in_o christ_n 38._o yea_o they_o can_v say_v of_o christ_n this_o be_v the_o heir_n 5_o they_o do_v all_o also_o after_o the_o spirit_n have_v supernatural_o reveal_v christ_n unto_o they_o for_o it_o be_v note_v that_o jesus_n know_v their_o thought_n 31._o and_o thereupon_o he_o accuse_v they_o of_o blaspheme_v the_o holy_a ghost_n he_o know_v their_o thought_n that_o be_v he_o know_v how_o far_o the_o spirit_n have_v wrought_v in_o they_o and_o how_o they_o strive_v against_o and_o resist_v the_o spirit_n and_o in_o that_o respect_n accuse_v they_o of_o this_o blasphemy_n last_o to_o put_v the_o matter_n out_o of_o all_o doubt_n after_o that_o christ_n have_v set_v out_o this_o sin_n saint_n mark_n add_v this_o clause_n because_o they_o say_v he_o have_v a_o unclean_a spirit_n 30._o imply_v by_o that_o inference_n that_o that_o blasphemy_n be_v in_o they_o a_o evidence_n of_o the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n §._o 20._o of_o the_o meaning_n of_o these_o word_n shall_v not_o and_o shall_v never_o be_v forgive_v the_o second_o general_a point_n note_v by_o christ_n about_o the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o issue_n thereof_o which_o be_v set_v down_o negative_o affirmative_o negative_o both_o by_o saint_n mark_v in_o these_o word_n have_v never_o forgiveness_n and_o also_o by_o s._n matthew_n in_o these_o word_n shall_v not_o be_v forgive_v unto_o man_n which_o be_v further_o amplify_v by_o a_o distinction_n of_o time_n in_o these_o word_n neither_o in_o this_o world_n nor_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v affirmative_o only_o by_o saint_n mark_v in_o these_o word_n be_v in_o danger_n of_o eternal_a damnation_n the_o sentence_n and_o doom_n which_o christ_n in_o all_o these_o word_n and_o phrase_n have_v give_v of_o this_o sin_n be_v very_o perspicuous_a and_o clear_a but_o that_o papist_n have_v bring_v a_o cloud_n of_o obscurity_n upon_o they_o by_o the_o vapour_n of_o their_o false_a gloss_n and_o heresy_n which_o we_o will_v first_o remove_v and_o then_o declare_v the_o fearful_a issue_n of_o this_o sin_n first_o the_o papist_n clean_o overthrow_v the_o main_a point_n here_o intend_v 49._o by_o interpret_n the_o indefinite_a negative_a particle_n not_o and_o the_o general_a negative_a never_o to_o as_o if_o a_o difficulty_n only_o and_o not_o a_o impossibility_n be_v intend_v as_o if_o christ_n have_v say_v the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v not_o easy_o but_o very_o hardly_o be_v forgive_v or_o ordinary_o and_o for_o the_o most_o part_n it_o shall_v not_o be_v forgive_v but_o the_o word_n be_v more_o clear_a then_o so_o to_o be_v obscure_v for_o not_o never_o nor_o in_o this_o world_n nor_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v be_v much_o more_o than_o not_o ordinary_o not_o easy_o hardly_o and_o for_o the_o most_o part_n beside_o if_o there_o be_v not_o a_o impossibility_n of_o the_o pardon_n of_o it_o prayer_n may_v be_v make_v for_o the_o party_n that_o commit_v it_o 16._o which_o may_v not_o be_v do_v but_o as_o this_o text_n be_v clear_a enough_o to_o such_o as_o have_v not_o contentious_a and_o captious_a spirit_n so_o there_o be_v other_o text_n which_o put_v the_o point_n more_o out_o of_o all_o doubt_n and_o question_n as_o where_o the_o apostle_n say_v it_o be_v impossible_a to_o renew_v they_o again_o 27._o and_o again_o there_o remain_v no_o more_o sacrifice_n for_o sin_n but_o a_o fearful_a look_v for_o of_o judgement_n and_o fiery_a indignation_n §._o 21._o of_o the_o error_n which_o papist_n gather_v from_o this_o phrase_n nor_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v again_o papist_n rove_v far_o beyond_o the_o scope_n of_o christ_n in_o this_o place_n by_o infer_v from_o this_o clause_n nor_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v that_o some_o sin_n which_o be_v not_o forgive_v in_o this_o world_n 11._o may_v be_v forgive_v in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v whence_o they_o further_o infer_v that_o there_o be_v a_o purgatory_n after_o this_o life_n and_o render_v these_o reason_n of_o this_o latter_a inference_n first_o that_o into_o heaven_n can_v enter_v no_o unclean_a thing_n second_o that_o out_o of_o hell_n there_o can_v be_v no_o redemption_n therefore_o say_v they_o there_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o purgatory_n by_o which_o they_o which_o die_v in_o their_o sin_n must_v be_v purge_v and_o out_o of_o which_o they_o who_o sin_n be_v forgive_v after_o this_o life_n must_v be_v deliver_v answ_n 27._o the_o two_o position_n which_o be_v lay_v down_o for_o reason_n be_v sound_a and_o true_a for_o neither_o can_v any_o unclean_a thing_n enter_v into_o heaven_n nor_o can_v any_o that_o be_v once_o cast_v into_o hell_n be_v ever_o deliver_v out_o of_o it_o for_o the_o scripture_n term_v their_o pain_n everlasting_a heaven_n and_o yet_o the_o papist_n be_v not_o constant_a in_o those_o assertion_n but_o deliver_v many_o point_n contrary_a to_o they_o both_o as_o that_o many_o who_o for_o treason_n rebellion_n and_o such_o like_a damnable_a sin_n be_v execute_v and_o die_v without_o repentance_n for_o they_o die_v martyr_n and_o be_v immediate_o carry_v to_o glory_n be_v not_o this_o to_o thrust_v unclean_a bird_n into_o heaven_n and_o again_o that_o many_o who_o die_v in_o mortal_a sin_n hell_n and_o so_o by_o their_o own_o position_n go_v to_o hell_n be_v deliver_v from_o thence_o some_o of_o the_o instance_n which_o their_o own_o writer_n have_v give_v hereof_o be_v these_o mortuis_fw-la the_o soul_n of_o falconilla_n a_o pagan_a be_v free_v from_o hell_n by_o the_o prayer_n of_o saint_n thecla_n and_o ibid._n the_o soul_n of_o traiane_n a_o pagan_a emperor_n by_o the_o prayer_n of_o pope_n gregory_n and_o 12._o a_o certain_a lewd_a man_n carry_v by_o the_o devil_n into_o hell_n be_v deliver_v by_o saint_n sereus_n but_o to_o pass_v by_o these_o lie_a fable_n the_o consequence_n which_o from_o the_o forename_a sound_a position_n they_o gather_v be_v most_o unsound_a and_o absurd_a namely_o that_o there_o be_v a_o purgatory_n of_o which_o fiction_n i_o have_v speak_v 40._o before_o and_o that_o sin_n may_v be_v forgive_v after_o this_o life_n a_o point_n which_o as_o be_v say_v before_o they_o gather_v from_o this_o phrase_n nor_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v 32._o the_o falsehood_n whereof_o be_v easy_o discover_v by_o a_o due_a consideration_n of_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o the_o word_n §._o 22._o of_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o this_o phrase_n nor_o in_o this_o world_n nor_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v the_o greek_a word_n seculum_fw-la and_o the_o latin_a also_o which_o we_o translate_v world_n signify_v rather_o time_n then_o place_n by_o this_o world_n be_v mean_v the_o time_n of_o a_o man_n life_n here_o upon_o earth_n by_o the_o world_n to_o come_v all_o the_o time_n from_o his_o death_n proceed_v on_o without_o end_n to_o eternity_n two_o world_n be_v in_o scripture_n give_v to_o every_o man_n to_o be_v in_o one_o from_o the_o time_n of_o his_o conception_n or_o birth_n to_o his_o death_n the_o other_o from_o thence_o for_o ever_o for_o after_o death_n there_o be_v no_o alteration_n of_o a_o man_n estate_n but_o because_o the_o manifestation_n of_o that_o perpetual_a and_o eternal_a estate_n be_v at_o the_o great_a day_n of_o judgement_n when_o all_o shall_v stand_v before_o their_o judge_n and_o receive_v their_o doom_n the_o beginning_n of_o that_o age_n or_o world_n to_o come_v be_v common_o reckon_v from_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n in_o which_o respect_n christ_n join_v that_o world_n and_o the_o resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a together_o 35._o which_o be_v so_o it_o be_v as_o evident_a as_o may_v be_v that_o no_o sin_n can_v be_v forgive_v in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v §._o 23._o of_o the_o many_o answer_n which_o may_v be_v give_v against_o the_o papist_n collection_n concern_v forgiveness_n of_o sin_n in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v bvtful_o to_o discover_v the_o erroneous_a
man_n 590_o how_o sin_n be_v say_v to_o be_v commit_v against_o the_o son_n of_o man_n 591_o soldier_n christian_n be_v soldier_n 16._o 17_o no_o easy_a thing_n to_o be_v a_o christian_a soldier_n 294_o speech_n needful_a for_o minister_n 517_o spirit_n of_o god_n see_v ghost_n the_o devil_n a_o spirit_n 79_o spirit_n very_o terrible_a 81_o the_o spirit_n of_o spirit_n terrible_a to_o devil_n 83_o strength_n of_o god_n 9_o supplication_n a_o end_n of_o fast_v 459_o sword_n of_o spirit_n 313_o the_o temporal_a sword_n a_o help_n to_o the_o spiritual_a 315_o t_n tear_n in_o prayer_n 442_o tempt_v not_o god_n 342_o thanksgiving_n what_o it_o be_v 399_o thank_n due_a only_o to_o god_n 400_o thank_n to_o be_v offer_v up_o in_o the_o mediation_n of_o christ_n 401_o thank_n to_o be_v give_v for_o all_o thing_n 402_o for_o spiritual_a temporal_a and_o eternal_a blessing_n 403_o for_o remove_v evil_n 405_o for_o adversity_n and_o for_o evil_n 406._o 414_o more_o matter_n of_o thanksgiving_n then_o of_o petition_n 409_o how_o blind_a who_o see_v no_o matter_n of_o thanksgiving_n 415_o thank_n to_o be_v give_v always_o 480_o direction_n for_o thanksgiving_n 418_o tongve_n a_o strange_a tongue_n unlawful_a in_o god_n worship_n 434_o trial_n many_o trial_n and_o trouble_n to_o be_v pass_v over_o 107_o 175._o 303_o prepare_v against_o trial_n &_o trouble_n 106_o trouble_n fall_v not_o out_o without_o god_n 177_o truth_n four_o kind_n of_o truth_n 121_o truth_n of_o opinion_n heart_n speech_n action_n 122_o truth_n as_o salt_n 123_o truth_n as_o a_o girdle_n 124_o truth_n a_o ornament_n and_o strength_n 125._o etc._n etc._n trial_o of_o truth_n 127_o how_o to_o get_v and_o buy_v truth_n 130._o 132_o the_o excellency_n and_o necessity_n of_o truth_n 131._o etc._n etc._n sell_v not_o truth_n 134_o satan_n wile_n against_o truth_n 134._o etc._n etc._n god_n protect_v defender_n of_o truth_n 137_o truth_n keep_v from_o despair_n 138_o truth_n be_v easy_a and_o sweet_a 139_o truth_n the_o best_a mean_n of_o gain_n 140_o most_n man_n little_a regard_n truth_n 142_o god_n be_v true_a and_o will_v perform_v his_o word_n 226_o five_o verity_n see_v truth_n vigil_n night_n vigil_n of_o papist_n 489_o unanimity_n and_o uniformity_n in_o public_a prayer_n 433_o ungratefulness_n of_o man._n 586_o ungratefulness_n of_o man_n dry_v not_o up_o the_o spring_n of_o god_n goodness_n 593_o voice_n the_o minister_n voice_n must_v be_v audible_a 433_o and_o intelligible_a 434_o vow_n a_o help_n to_o prayer_n 464_o direction_n for_o make_v vow_n 466_o vow_n public_a and_o private_a 467_o utterance_n needful_a for_o minister_n 517_o saint_n paul_n have_v excellent_a utterance_n &_o yet_o pray_v for_o it_o 518_o w_n war_n the_o christian_a war_n a_o fierce_a war_n 49_o warfare_n our_o life_n a_o warfare_n 17_o watchfulness_n cause_v by_o danger_n 45_o watchfulness_n a_o help_n to_o prayer_n 488_o what_o it_o be_v to_o watch_n unto_o prayer_n 488._o etc._n etc._n direction_n for_o watchfulness_n 494_o wicked_a man_n satan_n vassal_n 76_o devil_n extreme_o wicked_a 84_o wickedness_n a_o diabolical_a quality_n 85_o will._n papist_n attribute_v too_o much_o to_o man_n will._n 30_o wisdom_n needful_a to_o apply_v the_o word_n 322._o etc._n etc._n the_o spirit_n of_o wisdom_n to_o be_v pray_v for_o 563_o word_n what_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n 316_o knowledge_n of_o it_o necessary_a 321._o 337_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n to_o be_v search_v out_o 317_o mean_n to_o find_v out_o the_o sense_n of_o it_o ibid._n the_o word_n as_o a_o sword_n 319_o a_o sword_n of_o the_o spirit_n 320_o a_o sharp_a sword_n 332_o four_o grace_n needful_a to_o use_v the_o word_n aright_o 321_o the_o benefit_n of_o wel-using_a the_o word_n 324_o the_o word_n profitable_a to_o all_o thing_n 325._o 326_o how_o many_o way_n the_o word_n be_v neglect_v 326_o they_o be_v enemy_n of_o god_n people_n who_o deprive_v they_o of_o the_o word_n ibid._n the_o word_n perspicuous_a 333._o 336_o the_o word_n fit_a for_o the_o simple_a 336_o in_o what_o respect_v the_o word_n be_v difficult_a 333._o etc._n etc._n no_o fault_n in_o the_o word_n if_o man_n profit_v not_o by_o it_o 339_o how_o to_o be_v resolve_v of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o word_n 328_o no_o doubt_n to_o be_v make_v of_o god_n word_n 329_o cod_n word_n a_o sure_a rule_n 330_o satan_n wile_n against_o the_o word_n 328_o the_o word_n pervert_v by_o heretic_n 331_o the_o word_n a_o mean_n to_o beget_v faith_n 218_o the_o word_n a_o mean_n to_o increase_v faith_n 264_o god_n word_n to_o be_v deliver_v as_o god_n word_n 541._o 561_o world_n the_o devil_n rule_v over_o the_o world_n 75._o 76_o y_o yield_v not_o to_o satan_n 63._o 103_o finis_fw-la 1_o sam._n 2._o 30._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 2_o cor._n 2._o 16._o mat._n 25._o 23._o 2_o tim._n 4._o 8._o 2_o cor._n 8._o 12._o mar._n 16._o 15._o vox_fw-la audita_fw-la perit_fw-la littera_fw-la scripta_fw-la manet_fw-la bonum_fw-la quo_fw-la communius_fw-la eo_fw-la melius_fw-la aliquid_fw-la novus_fw-la ad●cit_fw-la author_n 1_o pet._n 5._o 8._o church-court_n in_o blackfriar_n london_n december_n 31._o 1618._o church-court_n in_o blackfriar_n london_n december_n 31._o 1618._o 1618._o chap._n 1_o &_o 2_o &_o 3_o 3_o chap._n 4_o 5_o &_o 6._o 6._o from_o chap._n 4_o vers_fw-la 1._o to_o chap._n 5._o ver_fw-la 22._o 22._o from_o chap._n 5._o vers_fw-la 22._o to_o chap._n 6._o v._n 10._o the_o sun_n the_o resolution_n resolution_n put_v on_o the_o whole_a armour_n of_o god_n god_n that_o you_o may_v be_v able_a to_o stand_v etc._n etc._n etc._n verse_n 14_o 15_o 16_o 17._o 17._o 1_o sam._n 17._o 39_o 39_o verse_n 18._o etc._n etc._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d obser_n 1._o the_o necessary_a of_o this_o direction_n direction_n hebr._n 21._o 21._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d obser_n 2._o the_o apostle_n humility_n humility_n chap_n 4._o v._n 28_o 28_o verse_n 5._o 8._o 8._o rom._n 12._o 16._o 16._o mat._n 23._o 7_o etc._n etc._n reason_n reason_n mal._n 2._o 10._o ephes_n 4._o 6._o 6._o 1_o cor._n 12._o 12._o 12._o gal._n 3._o 28._o account_v all_o brethren_n brethren_n heb._n 2._o 11_o 14._o 14._o matth._n 11._o 29_o 29_o prou._n 3._o 34._o 34._o 1_o pet._n 5._o 5._o this_o title_n brother_n not_o to_o be_v ●corned_v obser_n 3._o the_o apostle_n mildness_n mildness_n 1_o cor._n 15._o 58._o 58._o phil._n 4._o 1._o 1._o gal._n 4._o 19_o 19_o 1_o cor._n 4._o 1●_n enforce_v exhor_n tation_n with_o evidence_n of_o love_n love_n 2_o tim._n 2._o 24._o simil._n doct._n 1._o spiritual_a valour_n needful_a needful_a jos_n 1._o 6._o 7._o 7._o 1_o chr._n 18._o 10._o 10._o 1_o sam._n 17._o 45_o 45_o act_n 21._o 13._o 13._o luke_n 9_o 51._o 51._o mat._n 16._o 23._o reason_n 1._o 1._o rom._n 7._o 18._o 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n reason_n 2._o 2._o zach._n 3._o 1._o 1._o 1_o thes_n 2._o 18._o 18._o 2._o cor._n 12._o 7._o 7._o matth._n 4._o 1._o 1._o mat._n 16._o 22._o 22._o john_n 14._o 30._o timerousnes_n tax_v tax_v deut_n 21._o 8._o judge_n 7._o 3._o 3._o james_n 4._o 7._o 7._o phil._n 1._o 28._o 28._o heb._n 12._o 2._o 2._o on_o verse_n 12._o 12._o prou._n 30._o 30._o 30._o prou._n 28._o 1._o object_n answer_n doct._n 2._o our_o strength_n be_v in_o the_o lord_n lord_n 2_o cor._n 3._o 5._o 5._o john_n 15._o 5._o 5._o psal_n 18._o 1_o 2._o 2._o phil._n 4._o 13._o 13._o col._n 1._o 11._o reason_n 2._o cor._n 12._o 9_o renounce_v all_o confidence_n in_o the_o self_n self_n psal_n 10._o 3._o 3._o prou._n 27._o 7._o rest_v on_o a_o sure_a ground_n ground_n 1_o sam._n 17._o 45_o 45_o rom._n 8._o 37._o it_o be_v vain_a to_o trust_v in_o one_o self_n self_n 1_o sam._n 17._o 8._o 8._o isa_n 36._o &_o 37_o 37_o 2_o sam._n 14._o 14_o 14_o mat._n 26._o 35._o 35._o james_n 4._o 6._o or_o in_o any_o other_o creature_n creature_n isa_n 30._o 2_o 3._o 3._o ezec._n 29._o 6._o 7_o gregory_n 7._o surname_v heldebrand_n a_o very_a brand_n of_o h●●_n a_o necromancer_n &_o a_o bloody_a tyrant_n boniface_n 7._o &_o 8._o cruel_a oppressor_n and_o sacrilegious_a robber_n alexander_n 6._o compa●●ed_v with_o the_o divel●_n to_o be_v pope_n a_o incestuous_a un●aciable_a adulterer_n adulterer_n jer._n 14._o 3._o 3._o chap._n 1._o vers_fw-la 19_o doct._n 3._o god_n power_n be_v a_o most_o mighty_a power_n power_n schap_n 1._o ●_o 19_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d reason_n god_n mighty_a power_n a_o prop_n to_o faith_n faith_n 1_o pet._n 1._o 13._o 13._o 2_o chr._n 20._o 12._o 2_o chron._n 20._o 12._o 12._o 2._o king_n 6._o 15._o 15._o psal_n 78._o 19_o 20._o 20._o 2_o cor._n 12._o 9_o 9_o 1_o sam._n 14._o 6._o 2_o chr._n 34._o 11._o 11._o judge_n 7._o 2_o etc._n etc._n etc._n 2_o king_n 6._o 17._o 17._o chap._n 1._o
rom._n 8._o 25._o ii_o point_n wherein_o hope_n and_o faith_n agree_v 1_o in_o the_o author_n author_n gal._n 5._o 22._o 22._o rom._n 15._o 13._o 2_o in_o the_o matter_n matter_n eph._n 2._o 8._o 8._o rom._n 8._o 25._o 25._o act._n 15._o 9_o 9_o 1_o joh._n 3._o 3_o 3_o in_o the_o ground_n 4_o in_o the_o property_n property_n heb._n 6._o 11._o 11._o &_o 10._o 21._o 21._o rom._n 8._o 25._o 25._o isa_n 28._o 16._o 5_o in_o the_o continuance_n 6_o in_o the_o effect_n wherein_o they_o differ_v differ_v heb._n 11._o 1._o 1._o heb._n 11._o 3._o 3._o joh._n 20._o 29._o 29._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d heb._n 11._o 1._o 1._o joh._n 3._o 33._o iii_o point_n how_o fit_o hope_n be_v resemble_v to_o a_o helmet_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d rom._n 8._o 19_o vide_fw-la beza_n annotat_fw-la psal_n 25._o 1._o &_o 121._o 1._o 1._o rom._n 5._o 5_o 5_o psal_n 27._o 13._o 14._o 14._o heb._n 6._o 19_o sicut_fw-la anchora_fw-la iactata_fw-la de_fw-la navi_fw-la non_fw-la permittit_fw-la cam_fw-la circumferri_fw-la licet_fw-la venticommoveant_fw-la sed_fw-la firmam_fw-la facit_fw-la ficet_fw-la spes_fw-la chry._n in_o heb._n hom_n 11_o 11_o psal_n 23._o 4._o four_o point_n hope_v necessary_a in_o four_o respect_n 1_o time_n uncertain_a uncertain_a mar._n 13._o 32._o act._n 1._o 7._o 7._o mar._n 13._o 33._o 33._o luke_n 12._o 36_o etc._n etc._n etc._n gen._n 12._o 7._o 7._o &_o 21._o 5._o 5._o rom._n 4._o 18._o 18._o luk._n 2._o 25_o etc._n etc._n etc._n gen._n 3._o 15._o 15._o luk._n 2._o 1._o etc._n etc._n etc._n jude_n v._n 14._o 14._o reu._n 6._o 10._o 11_o dei_fw-la promissis_fw-la credere_fw-la debemus_fw-la etiamsi_fw-la multum_fw-la temporis_fw-la interfluat_fw-la chrys_n in_o gen._n hom_n 39_o 2_o trouble_n many_o exod._n 5._o 7._o 7._o rom._n 4._o 18._o 18._o heb._n 10._o 35._o etc._n etc._n 3_o wicked_a scoff_n scoff_n 2_o pet._n 3._o 4._o 4._o psal_n 42._o 10._o 10._o &_o 3._o 2._o 2._o &_o 42._o 11._o 4_o we_o weak_a weak_a psal_n 13._o 1._o 1._o psal_n 13._o 5._o 5._o rom._n 4._o 8._o 8._o job_n 13._o 15._o v._o point_n how_o hope_n be_v get_v see_v treat_n 2._o part_n 6._o &_o 17._o etc._n etc._n 2._o how_o preserve_v 1._o faith_n in_o god_n promise_n uphold_v hope_n 2_o experience_n uphold_v hope_n hope_n rom._n 5._o 4._o 4._o psal_n 22._o 4._o &_o 34._o 6._o &_o 143._o 5._o 5._o jam._n 5._o 11._o 11._o rom._n 15._o 4._o 4._o rom._n 5._o 4._o 4._o psal_n 106._o 7._o oft_o meditate_v of_o the_o end_n of_o hope_n si_fw-mi vis_fw-la sustinere_fw-la laborem_fw-la attend_v mercedem_fw-la aug._n in_o psal_n 36_o 36_o jam._n 5._o 7._o 7._o heb._n 10._o 35._o 3._o how_o hope_n be_v well_o use_v 1_o cast_v the_o anchor_n of_o hope_n on_o a_o sure_a ground_n ground_n matth._n 5._o 18._o 18._o psal_n 119._o 19_o 2_o fast_o fix_v it_o on_o that_o ground_n ground_n rom._n 4._o 18_o etc._n etc._n 3._o of●_n renew_v the_o hold_n hold_n isa_n 40._o 31._o vi_o point_n satan_n wile_n wile_n heb._n 5._o 12._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d luke_n 1._o 4._o 4._o ose_n 4._o 1._o 2_o thes_n 1._o 8._o 8._o mat._n 5._o 45._o 45._o jude_n v._n 5._o 5._o tit._n 2._o 11._o 12._o 12._o mat._n 26._o 41._o 41._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d doct._n drive_a away_o thy_o spiritual_a enemy_n enemy_n jam._n 4._o 7._o 7._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d col._n 3._o 5._o 5._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d rom._n 8._o 13._o 13._o gal._n 5._o 24._o 24._o rom._n 6._o 6._o 6._o 1_o cor._n 9_o 27._o 27._o mat._n 4._o 10._o 10._o 1_o cor._n 9_o 27._o 27._o gal._n 6._o 14._o reason_n magistrate_n must_v cut_v off_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o church_n church_n rom._n 13._o 4._o 4._o 2_o kin._n 23._o 20._o the_o use_n of_o the_o temporal_a sword_n a_o help_n to_o the_o spiritual_a 2_o minister_n must_v resute_n error_n and_o reprove_v vice_n vice_n 2_o cor._n 10._o 4_o 5_o 6._o 6._o tit._n 1._o 9_o 3_o private_a christian_n must_v subdue_v their_o enemy_n 1._o point_n what_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n god_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 2_o tim._n 3._o 16._o 16._o ephe._n 1._o 9_o 9_o &_o 3._o 10._o 10._o rom._n 1._o 16._o not_o the_o letter_n but_o the_o sense_n be_v god_n word_n word_n mar._n 13._o 32._o 32._o joh._n 14._o 28._o ●_o ●_o phil._n 2._o 6._o use_v search_v out_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d joh._n 5._o 39_o singuli_fw-la sermon_n syllabae_fw-la apices_fw-la puncta_fw-la in_o divinis_fw-la scripturisplena_fw-la sunt_fw-la sensibus_fw-la hier._n in_o eph._n 3._o vide_fw-la aug_n de_fw-fr doct_v chr._n l._n 3._o c._n 24_o 25._o etc._n etc._n etc._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d mat._n 26._o 26._o luk._n 10._o 30._o &c_n &c_n agant_fw-la orando_fw-la &_o quaerendo_fw-la &_o bene_fw-la vivendo_fw-la ut_fw-la intelligant_fw-la aug._n de_fw-fr trin._n l._n 3._o c._n 17_o 2_o thes_n 2._o 10._o 11._o ii_o point_n how_o fit_o god_n word_n be_v compare_v to_o a_o sword_n sword_n 2_o sam._n 23._o 10_o 10_o mat._n 4._o 4._o 4._o 7._o 7._o 10._o 10._o mat._n 12._o 3_o 5._o 5._o &_o 22_o 32_o 44._o 44._o act._n 7._o 1._o etc._n etc._n etc._n &_o 18._o 28._o gladius_n dicitur_fw-la sermo_fw-la divinus_fw-la quia_fw-la sicut_fw-la gladius_fw-la carnes_z praecidit_fw-la sic_fw-la &_o sermo_fw-la divinus_fw-la concupis●●ntias_fw-la carnales_fw-la chrys_n in_o mat._n hom_n 8._o 8._o 2_o pet._n 1._o 21._o 21._o 2_o cor._n 10._o 4._o heb._n 4._o 12._o 12._o 1_o pet._n 3._o 14._o phil._n 1._o 28_o 3._o point_n four_o grace_n needful_a to_o use_v the_o word_n aright_o 1_o knowledge_n per_fw-la scripturas_fw-la solas_fw-la potes_fw-la plenam_fw-la dei_fw-la intelligere_fw-la voluntatem_fw-la hier._n ad_fw-la demet._n demet._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 1_o tim._n 4._o 13_o 13_o jos_n 1_o 8_o psal_n 119._o 97_o 2_o wisdom_n wisdom_n 2_o pet._n 3._o 16._o 16._o 2_o sam._n 1._o 12._o 12._o 2_o cor._n 2._o 16._o 16._o mat._n 4._o 4_o 4_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 10._o 3_o faith_n faith_n rom._n 1._o 16._o 16._o heb._n 4._o 2._o quod_fw-la divinarum_fw-la scripturarum_fw-la perspicua_fw-la firmatur_fw-la authoritate_fw-la sine_fw-la ulla_fw-la dubitatio_fw-la ne_fw-la credendum_fw-la est_fw-la aug._n ep_n 1●_n 2_o 4_o obedience_n obedience_n 1_o cor._n 8._o 2._o 2._o jam._n 1._o 23_o 24_o 24_o deu●_n 5._o 32_o 32_o john_n 13._o 17_o the_o benefit_n of_o well_o use_v the_o word_n non_fw-la novimus_fw-la clios_fw-la libros_fw-la ita_fw-la destruentes_fw-la superbiam_fw-la ita_fw-la des●ruentes_n inimicum_fw-la etc._n etc._n aug._n confess_v lib._n 13._o 13._o 2_o tim._n 3._o 16_o 16_o psal_n 119._o 98_o 99_o 100_o 100_o job_n 11._o 12._o 12._o mal._n 2._o 7._o 7._o psal_n 119._o 50_o 50_o psa_fw-la 119._o 105._o 105._o 9_o 9_o 50._o 50._o 24_o 24_o pro._n 1._o 4._o the_o word_n a_o excellent_a weapon_n they_o be_v enemy_n of_o god_n people_n who_o deprive_v they_o of_o the_o use_n of_o the_o word_n who_o neglect_v the_o word_n be_v enemy_n to_o their_o own_o soul_n 1_o who_o read_v it_o not_o or_o hear_v it_o not_o at_o all_o 2._o who_o seldom_o read_v it_o 3_o who_o search_v it_o not_o 4_o who_o seek_v not_o to_o be_v edify_v by_o it_o 5._o who_o neglect_v the_o preach_n of_o it_o 6._o who_o use_v it_o against_o the_o truth_n v._o point_n satan_n wi●es_n to_o deprive_v u●_n of_o the_o word_n word_n gen._n 3._o ●_o 4._o 4._o 1._o pet._n 3._o 19_o 20._o 1._o have_v thy_o judgement_n well_o inform_v in_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n perkins_n in_o prophe_n cha_n 3._o &_o in_o case_n of_o consci_fw-la l._n 2_o c._n 3._o 2_o pray_v for_o the_o spirit_n of_o revelation_n ephe._n 1._o 19_o 3_o give_v no_o place_n to_o doubt_v audiendi_fw-la non_fw-la sunt_fw-la qui_fw-fr forte_fw-fr dicerent_fw-la unde_fw-la scis_fw-la illos_fw-la libros_fw-la unius_fw-la very_fw-la &_o veracissimi_fw-la dei_fw-la spiritu_fw-la esse_fw-la humano_fw-la generi_fw-la ministratos_fw-la id_fw-la ipsum_fw-la enim_fw-la maxim_n credendum_fw-la erat_fw-la etc._n etc._n aug._n consci_fw-la l._n 6_o c._n 5._o 5._o mat._n 4._o 10._o pighius_fw-la cusan_a in_o epist_n ad_fw-la bohem._n 2._o &_o 7._o god_n word_n a_o sure_a rule_n rule_n psal_n 19_o 7._o 8_o 9_o &_o 119._o 160._o 160._o revel_v 22._o 18._o 19_o 19_o gal._n 1._o 8._o 8._o 2_o pet._n 1._o 19●_n 19●_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d joh._n 5._o 33._o etc._n etc._n haeretici_fw-la carpunt_fw-la eloquia_fw-la scripturarum_fw-la et_fw-la quantum_fw-la in_o se_fw-la est_fw-la maculant_fw-la hieron_n in_o ezec._n 34._o 34._o psal_n 91._o 11._o mat._n 4._o 6._o 6._o gen._n 6._o 5._o cuncta_fw-la cogitatio_fw-la cordis_fw-la intenta_fw-la esset_fw-la ad_fw-la malum_fw-la omni_fw-la tempore_fw-la tempore_fw-la luke_n 1._o 28._o aue_fw-la gratia_fw-la plena_fw-la plena_fw-la mat._n 26._o 16._o 16._o luke_n 22._o 38._o bonifac._n 8._o